Project
Gutenberg Consortia
Center's
World Public
Library Collection
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center Collection, a member of the World
Public Library,http://WorldLibrary.net,
bringing the world's eBook collections together.
Conditions
of Use:
This
eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
this eBook or full complete details are online at: http://gutenberg.net/license.
Here are 3 of the more major items to consider:
The eBooks
on the PG sites are not 100% public domain, some of them are copyrighted
and used by permission and thus you may charge for redistribution
only via direct permission from the copyright holders.
Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark [TM]. For any other purpose
than to redistribute eBooks containing the entire Project Gutenberg
file free of charge and with the headers intact, permission is
required.
The public
domain status is per U.S. copyright law. This eBook is from the
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center of the United States.
The mission of the Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to provide
a similar framework for the collection of eBook collections as does
Project Gutenberg for single eBooks, operating under the practices,
and general guidelines of Project Gutenberg. The major additional
function of Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to manage the addition
of large collections of eBooks from other eBook creation and collection
centers around the world.
For more great classic literature visit:
The
World Public Library and Project Gutenberg Consortia Center, bringing
the world's eBook collections together http://www.Gutenberg.us
I AM perfectly aware that this is a terribly sensational book,
and open to innumerable criticisms on that account, as well as
on many others. But I did not know how else to express the
principles I desired (and which I passionately believe to be
true) except by producing their lines to a sensational point. I
have tried, however, not to scream unduly loud, and to retain so
far as possible reverence and consideration for the opinions of
other people. Whether I have succeeded in that attempt is quite
another matter.
Robert Hugh Benson.
Cambridge, 1907.
Persons who do not like tiresome prologues, need not read this
one. It is essential only to the situation, not to the story.
R.H.B.
PROLOGUE
"YOU must give me a moment," said the old man, leaning back.
Percy re-settled himself in his chair and waited, chin on
hand.
It was a very silent room in which the three men sat,
furnished with the extreme commonsense of the period. It had
neither window nor door; for it was now sixty years since the
world, recognising that space is not confined to the surface of
the globe, had begun to burrow in earnest. Old Mr. Templeton's
house stood some forty feet below the level of the Thames
embankment, in what was considered a somewhat commodious
position, for he had only a hundred yards to walk before he
reached the station of the Second Central Motor-circle, and a
quarter of a mile to the volor-station at Blackfriars. He was
over ninety years old, however, and seldom left his house now.
The room itself was lined throughout with the delicate green
jade-enamel prescribed by the Board of Health, and was suffused
with the artificial sunlight discovered by the great Reuter
forty years before; it had the colour-tone of a spring wood, and
was warmed and ventilated through the classical frieze-grating
to the exact temperature of 18* Centigrade. Mr. Templeton was a
plain man, content to live as his father had lived before him.
The furniture, too, was a little old-fashioned in make and
design, constructed however according to the prevailing system
of soft asbestos enamel welded over iron, indestructible,
pleasant to the touch, and resembling mahogany. A couple of
book-cases well filled ran on either side of the bronze-pedestal
electric fire before which sat the three men; and in the further
corners stood the hydraulic lifts that gave entrance, the one to
the bedroom, the other to the corridor fifty feet up which
opened on to the Embankment.
Father Percy Franklin, the elder of the two priests, was
rather a remarkable-looking man, not more than thirty-five
years old, but with hair that was white throughout; his grey
eyes, under black eyebrows, were peculiarly bright and almost
passionate; but his prominent nose and chin, and the extreme
decisiveness of his mouth reassured the observer as to his will.
Strangers usually looked twice at him.
Father Francis, however, sitting in his upright chair on the
other side of the hearth, brought down the average; for, though
his brown eyes were pleasant and pathetic, there was no
strength in his face; there was even a tendency to feminine
melancholy in the corners of his mouth and the marked droop
of his eyelids.
Mr. Templeton was just a very old man, with a strong face in
folds, clean-shaven like the rest of the world, and was now
lying back on his water-pillows with the quilt over his feet.
* * * * * *
At last he spoke, glancing first at Percy on his left.
"Well," he said, "it is a great business to remember exactly;
but this is how I put it to myself.
"In England our party was first seriously alarmed at the
Labour Parliament of 1917. That showed us how deeply Hervéism
had impregnated the whole social atmosphere. There had been
Socialists before, but none like Gustave Hervé in his old age--
at least no one of the same power. He, perhaps you have read,
taught absolute Materialism and Socialism developed to their
logical issues. Patriotism, he said, was a relic of barbarism;
and sensual enjoyment was the only certain good. Of course,
everyone laughed at him. It was said that without religion there
could be no adequate motive among the masses for even the
simplest social order. But he was right, it seemed. After the
fall of the French Church at the beginning of the century and
the massacres of 1914, the bourgeoisie settled down to organise
itself; and that extraordinary movement began in earnest,
pushed through by the middle classes, with no patriotism, no
class distinctions, practically no army. Of course, Freemasonry
directed it all. This spread to Germany, where the influence of
Karl Marx had already----"
"Yes, sir," put in Percy smoothly, "but what of England, if
you don't mind----"
"Ah, yes; England. Well, in 1917 the Labour party gathered up
the reins, and Communism really began. That was long before I
can remember, of course, but my father used to date it from
then. The only wonder was that things did not go forward more
quickly; but I suppose there was a good deal of Tory leaven
left. Besides, centuries generally run slower than is expected,
especially after beginning with an impulse. But the new order
began then; and the Communists have never suffered a serious
reverse since, except the little one in '25. Blenkin founded `The
New People' then; and the `Times' dropped out; but it was not,
strangely enough, till '35 that the House of Lords fell for the
last time. The Established Church had gone finally in '29."
"And the religious effect of that?" asked Percy swiftly, as
the old man paused to cough slightly, lifting his inhaler. The
priest was anxious to keep to the point.
"It was an effect itself," said the other, "rather than a
cause. You see, the Ritualists, as they used to call them, after
a desperate attempt to get into the Labour swim, came into the
Church after the Convocation of '19, when the Nicene Creed
dropped out; and there was no real enthusiasm except among
them. But so far as there was an effect from the final
Disestablishment, I think it was that what was left of the State
Church melted into the Free Church, and the Free Church was,
after all, nothing more than a little sentiment. The Bible was
completely given up as an authority after the renewed German
attacks in the twenties; and the Divinity of our Lord, some
think, had gone all but in name by the beginning of the
century. The Kenotic theory had provided for that. Then there
was that strange little movement among the Free Churchmen
even earlier; when ministers who did no more than follow the
swim--who were sensitive to draughts, so to speak--broke off
from their old positions. It is curious to read in the history
of the time how they were hailed as independent thinkers. It
was just exactly what they were not. . . . Where was I? Oh, yes.
. . . Well, that cleared the ground for us, and the Church made
extraordinary progress for a while--extraordinary, that is,
under the circumstances, because, you must remember, things
were very different from twenty, or even ten, years before. I
mean that, roughly speaking, the severing of the sheep and the
goats had begun. The religious people were practically all
Catholics and Individualists; the irreligious people rejected
the supernatural altogether, and were, to a man, Materialists
and Communists. But we made progress because we had a few
exceptional men--Delaney the philosopher, McArthur and
Largent, the philanthropists, and so on. It really seemed as if
Delaney and his disciples might carry everything before them.
You remember his `Analogy'? Oh, yes, it is all in the text-
books. . . .
"Well, then, at the close of the Vatican Council, which had
been called in the nineteenth century, and never dissolved, we
lost a great number through the final definitions. The `Exodus
of the Intellectuals' the world called it----"
"The Biblical decisions," put in the younger priest.
"That partly; and the whole conflict that began with the rise
of Modernism at the beginning of the century: but much more
the condemnation of Delaney, and of the New Transcendentalism
generally, as it was then understood. He died outside the Church,
you know. Then there was the condemnation of Sciotti's book on
Comparative Religion. . . . After that the Communists went on
by strides, although by very slow ones. It seems extraordinary
to you, I daresay, but you cannot imagine the excitement when
the Necessary Trades Bill became law in '60. People thought
that all enterprise would stop when so many professions were
nationalised; but, you know, it didn't. Certainly the nation was
behind it."
"What year was the Two-Thirds Majority Bill passed?" asked
Percy.
"Oh! long before--within a year or two of the fall of the
House of Lords. It was necessary, I think, or the Individualists
would have gone raving mad. . . . Well, the Necessary Trades
Bill was inevitable: people had begun to see that even so far
back as the time when the railways were municipalised. For a
while there was a burst of art; because all the Individualists
who could went in for it (it was then that the Toller school was
founded); but they soon drifted back into Government
employment; after all, the six-per-cent. limit for all
individual enterprise was not much of a temptation; and
Government paid well."
Percy shook his head.
"Yes; but I cannot understand the present state of affairs.
You said just now that things went slowly?"
"Yes," said the old man, "but you must remember the Poor
Laws. That established the Communists for ever. Certainly
Braithwaite knew his business."
The younger priest looked up inquiringly.
"The abolition of the old workhouse system," said Mr.
Templeton. "It is all ancient history to you, of course; but I
remember as if it was yesterday. It was that which brought down
what was still called the Monarchy and the Universities."
"Ah," said Percy. "I should like to hear you talk about that,
sir."
"Presently, father. . . . Well, this is what Braithwaite did.
By the old system all paupers were treated alike, and resented
it. By the new system there were the three grades that we have
now, and the enfranchisement of the two higher grades. Only the
absolutely worthless were assigned to the third grade, and
treated more or less as criminals--of course after careful
examination. Then there was the reorganisation of the Old Age
Pensions. Well, don't you see how strong that made the
Communists? The Individualists--they were still called Tories
when I was a boy--the Individualists have had no chance since.
They are no more than a worn-out drag now. The whole of the
working-classes--and that meant ninety-nine of a hundred--were
all against them."
Percy looked up; but the other went on.
"Then there was the Prison Reform Bill under Macpherson, and
the abolition of capital punishment; there was the final
Education Act of '59 whereby dogmatic secularism was
established; the practical abolition of inheritance under the
reformation of the Death Duties----"
"I forget what the old system was," said Percy.
"Why; it seems incredible, but the old system was that all
paid alike. First came the Heirloom Act, and then the change by
which inherited wealth paid three times the duty of earned
wealth, leading up to the acceptance of Karl Marx's doctrines in
'89--but the former came in '77. . . . Well, all these things
kept England up to the level of the Continent; she had only
been just in time to join in with the final scheme of Western
Free Trade. That was the first effect you remember, of the
Socialists' victory in Germany."
"And how did we keep out of the Eastern War?" asked Percy
anxiously.
"Oh! that's a long story; but, in a word, America stopped us;
so we lost India and Australia. I think that was the nearest to
the downfall of the Communists since '25. But Braithwaite got
out of it very cleverly by getting us the protectorate of South
Africa once and for all. He was an old man then, too."
Mr. Templeton stopped to cough again. Father Francis sighed
and shifted in his chair.
"And America?" asked Percy.
"Ah! all that is very complicated. But she knew her strength
and annexed Canada the same year. That was when we were at our
weakest."
Percy stood up.
"Have you a Comparative Atlas, sir?" he asked.
The old man pointed to a shelf.
"There," he said.
* * * * * *
Percy looked at the sheets a minute or two in silence,
spreading them on his knees.
"It is all much simpler, certainly," he murmured, glancing
first at the old complicated colouring of the beginning of the
twentieth century, and then at the three great washes of the
twenty-first.
He moved his finger along Asia. The words EASTERN EMPIRE
ran across the pale yellow, from the Ural Mountains on the left
to the Behring Straits on the right, curling round in giant
letters through India, Australia, and New Zealand. He glanced at
the red; it was considerably smaller, but still important
enough, considering that it covered not only Europe proper, but
all Russia up to the Ural Mountains, and Africa to the south.
The blue-labelled AMERICAN REPUBLIC swept over the whole of
that continent, and disappeared right round to the left of the
Western Hemisphere in a shower of blue sparks on the white sea.
"Yes, it's simpler," said the old man drily.
Percy shut the book and set it by his chair.
"And what next, sir? What will happen?"
The old Tory statesman smiled.
"God knows," he said. "If the Eastern Empire chooses to
move, we can do nothing. I don't know why they have not moved.
I suppose it is because of religious differences."
"Europe will not split?" asked the priest.
"No, no. We know our danger now. And America would certainly
help us. But, all the same, God help us--or you, I should rather
say--if the Empire does move! She knows her strength at last."
There was silence for a moment or two. A faint vibration
trembled through the deep-sunk room as some huge machine
went past on the broad boulevard overhead.
"Prophesy, sir," said Percy suddenly. "I mean about religion."
Mr. Templeton inhaled another long breath from his
instrument. Then again he took up his discourse.
"Briefly," he said, "there are three forces--Catholicism,
Humanitarianism, and the Eastern religions. About the third I
cannot prophesy, though I think the Sufis will be victorious.
Anything may happen; Esotericism is making enormous strides--
and that means Pantheism; and the blending of the Chinese and
Japanese dynasties throws out all our calculations. But, in
Europe and America, there is no doubt that the struggle lies
between the other two. We can neglect everything else. And, I
think, if you wish me to say what I think, that, humanly
speaking, Catholicism will decrease rapidly now. It is perfectly
true that Protestantism is dead. Men do recognise at last that
a supernatural Religion involves an absolute authority, and that
Private Judgement in matters of faith is nothing else than the
beginning of disintegration. And it is also true that since the
Catholic Church is the only institution that even claims
supernatural authority, with all its merciless logic, she has
again the allegiance of practically all Christians who have any
supernatural belief left. There are a few faddists left,
especially in America and here; but they are negligible. That is
all very well; but, on the other hand, you must remember that
Humanitarianism, contrary to all persons' expectations, is
becoming an actual religion itself, though anti-supernatural. It
is Pantheism; it is developing a ritual under Freemasonry; it
has a creed, `God is Man,' and the rest. It has therefore a real
food of a sort to offer to religious cravings; it idealises, and
yet it makes no demand upon the spiritual facilities. Then,
they have the use of all the churches except ours, and all the
Cathedrals; and they are beginning at last to encourage
sentiment. Then, they may display their symbols and we may
not: I think that they will be established legally in another
ten years at the latest.
"Now, we Catholics, remember, are losing; we have lost
steadily for more than fifty years. I suppose that we have,
nominally, about one-fortieth of America now--and that is the
result of the Catholic movement of the early twenties. In
France and Spain we are nowhere; in Germany we are less. We
hold our position in the East, certainly; but even there we have
not more than one in two hundred--so the statistics say--and
we are scattered. In Italy? Well, we have Rome again to
ourselves, but nothing else; here, we have Ireland altogether
and perhaps one in sixty of England, Wales and Scotland; but we
had one in forty seventy years ago. Then there is the enormous
progress of psychology--all clean against us for at least a
century. First, you see, there was Materialism, pure and simple
--that failed more or less--it was too crude--until psychology
came to the rescue. Now psychology claims all the rest of the
ground; and the supernatural sense seems accounted for. That's
the claim. No, father, we are losing; and we shall go on losing,
and I think we must even be ready for a catastrophe at any
moment."
"But----" began Percy.
"You think that weak for an old man on the edge of the grave.
Well, it is what I think. I see no hope. In fact, it seems to me
that even now something may come on us quickly. No; I see no
hope until----"
Percy looked up sharply.
"Until our Lord comes back," said the old statesman.
Father Francis sighed once more, and there fell a silence.
* * * * * *
"And the fall of the Universities?" said Percy at last.
"My dear father, it was exactly like the fall of the
Monasteries under Henry VIII--the same results, the same
arguments, the same incidents. They were the strongholds of
Individualism, as the Monasteries were the strongholds of
Papalism; and they were regarded with the same kind of awe and
envy. Then the usual sort of remarks began about the amount of
port wine drunk; and suddenly people said that they had done
their work, that the inmates were mistaking means for ends;
and there was a great deal more reason for saying it. After all,
granted the supernatural, Religious Houses are an obvious
consequence; but the object of secular education is presumably
the production of something visible--either character or
competence; and it became quite impossible to prove that the
Universities produced either--which was worth having. The
distinction between ** and ** is not an end in itself; and the
kind of person produced by its study was not one which appealed
to England in the twentieth century. I am not sure that it
appealed even to me much (and I was always a strong
Individualist)--except by way of pathos----"
"Yes?" said Percy.
"Oh, it was pathetic enough. The Science Schools of
Cambridge and the Colonial Department of Oxford were the last
hope; and then those went. The old dons crept about with their
books, but nobody wanted them--they were too purely
theoretical; some drifted into the poorhouses, first or second
grade; some were taken care of by charitable clergymen; there
was that attempt to concentrate in Dublin; but it failed, and
people soon forgot them. The buildings, as you know, were used
for all kinds of things. Oxford became an engineering
establishment for a while, and Cambridge a kind of Government
laboratory. I was at King's College, you know. Of course it was
all as horrible as it could be--though I am glad they kept the
chapel open even as a museum. It was not nice to see the
chantries filled with anatomical specimens. However, I don't
think it was much worse than keeping stoves and surplices in
them."
"What happened to you?"
"Oh! I was in Parliament very soon; and I had a little money
of my own, too. But it was very hard on some of them; they had
little pensions, at least all who were past work. And yet, I
don't know: I suppose it had to come. They were very little
more than picturesque survivals, you know; and had not even the
grace of a religious faith about them."
Percy sighed again, looking at the humorously reminiscent
face of the old man. Then he suddenly changed the subject
again.
"What about this European parliament?" he said.
The old man started.
"Oh! . . . I think it will pass," he said, "if a man can be
found to push it. All this last century has been leading up to
it, as you see. Patriotism has been dying fast; but it ought to
have died, like slavery and so forth, under the influence of the
Catholic Church. As it is, the work has been done without the
Church; and the result is that the world is beginning to range
itself against us: it is an organised antagonism--a kind of
Catholic anti-Church. Democracy has done what the Divine
Monarchy should have done. If the proposal passes I think we
may expect something like persecution once more. . . . But,
again, the Eastern invasion may save us, if it comes off. . . . I
do not know. . . ."
Percy sat still yet a moment; then he stood up suddenly.
"I must go, sir," he said, relapsing into Esperanto. "It is
past nineteen o'clock. Thank you so much. Are you coming,
father?"
Father Francis stood up also, in the dark grey suit permitted
to priests, and took up his hat.
"Well, father," said the old man again, "come again some day,
if I haven't been too discursive. I suppose you have to write
your letter yet?"
Percy nodded.
"I did half of it this morning," he said, "but I felt I wanted
another bird's-eye view before I could understand properly: I
am so grateful to you for giving it me. It is really a great
labour, this daily letter to the Cardinal-Protector. I am
thinking of resigning if I am allowed."
"My dear father, don't do that. If I may say so to your face, I
think you have a very shrewd mind; and unless Rome has
balanced information she can do nothing. I don't suppose your
colleagues are as careful as yourself."
Percy smiled, lifting his dark eyebrows deprecatingly.
"Come, father," he said.
* * * * * *
The two priests parted at the steps of the corridor, and
Percy stood for a minute or two staring out at the familiar
autumn scene, trying to understand what it all meant. What he
had heard downstairs seemed strangely to illuminate that
vision of splendid prosperity that lay before him.
The air was as bright as day; artificial sunlight had carried
all before it, and London now knew no difference between dark
and light. He stood in a kind of glazed cloister, heavily floored
with a preparation of rubber on which footsteps made no sound.
Beneath him, at the foot of the stairs, poured an endless double
line of persons severed by a partition, going to right and left,
noiselessly, except for the murmur of Esperanto talking that
sounded ceaselessly as they went. Through the clear, hardened
glass of the public passage showed a broad sleek black roadway,
ribbed from side to side, and puckered in the centre,
significantly empty, but even as he stood there a note sounded
far away from Old Westminster, like the hum of a giant hive,
rising as it came, and an instant later a transparent thing shot
past, flashing from every angle, and the note died to a hum
again and a silence as the great Government motor from the
south whirled eastwards with the mails. This was a privileged
roadway; nothing but state-vehicles were allowed to use it, and
those at a speed not exceeding one hundred miles an hour.
Other noises were subdued in this city of rubber; the
passenger-circles were a hundred yards away, and the
subterranean traffic lay too deep for anything but a vibration
to make itself felt. It was to remove this vibration, and
silence the hum of the ordinary vehicles, that the Government
experts had been working for the last twenty years.
Once again before he moved there came a long cry from
overhead, startlingly beautiful and piercing, and, as he lifted
his eyes from the glimpse of the steady river which alone had
refused to be transformed, he saw high above him against the
heavy illuminated clouds, a long slender object, glowing with
soft light, slide northwards and vanish on outstretched wings.
That musical cry, he told himself, was the voice of one of the
European line of volors announcing its arrival in the capital of
Great Britain.
"Until our Lord comes back," he thought to himself; and for
an instant the old misery stabbed at his heart. How difficult it
was to hold the eyes focussed on that far horizon when this
world lay in the foreground so compelling in its splendour and
its strength! Oh! he had argued with Father Francis an hour ago
that size was not the same as greatness, and that an insistent
external could not exclude a subtle internal; and he had
believed what he had then said; but the doubt yet remained till
he silenced it by a fierce effort, crying in his heart to the
Poor Man of Nazareth to keep his heart as the heart of a little
child.
Then he set his lips, wondering how long Father Francis
would bear the pressure, and went down the steps.
OLIVER Brand, the new member for Croydon (4), sat in his study,
looking out of the window over the top of his typewriter.
His house stood facing northwards at the extreme end of a
spur of the Surrey Hills, now cut and tunnelled out of all
recognition; only to a Communist the view was an inspiriting
one. Immediately below the wide windows the embanked ground
fell away rapidly for perhaps a hundred feet, ending in a high
wall, and beyond that the world and works of men were
triumphant as far as eye could see. Two vast tracks like
streaked race-courses, each not less than a quarter of a mile in
width, and sunk twenty feet below the surface of the ground,
swept up to a meeting a mile ahead at the huge junction. Of
those, that on his left was the First Trunk road to Brighton,
inscribed in capital letters in the Railroad Guide, that to the
right the Second Trunk to the Tunbridge and Hastings district.
Each was divided lengthways by a cement wall, on one side of
which, on steel rails, ran the electric trams, and on the other
lay the motor-track itself again divided into three, on which
ran, first the Government coaches at a speed of one hundred and
fifty miles an hour, second the private motors at not more
than sixty, third the cheap Government line at thirty, with
stations every five miles. This was further bordered by a road
confined to pedestrians, cyclists and ordinary cars on which no
vehicle was allowed to move at more than twelve miles an hour.
Beyond these great tracks lay an immense plain of house-
roofs, with short towers here and there marking public
buildings, from the Caterham district on the left to Croydon in
front, all clear and bright in smokeless air; and far away to
the west and north showed the low suburban hills against the
April sky.
There was surprisingly little sound, considering the pressure
of the population; and, with the exception of the buzz of the
steel rails as a train fled north or south, and the occasional
sweet chord of the great motors as they neared or left the
junction, there was little to be heard in this study except a
smooth, soothing murmur that filled the air like the murmur
of bees in a garden.
Oliver loved every hint of human life--all busy sights and
sounds--and was listening now, smiling faintly to himself as he
stared out into the clear air. Then he set his lips, laid his
fingers on the keys once more, and went on speech-constructing.
* * * * * *
He was very fortunate in the situation of his house. It stood
in an angle of one of those huge spider-webs with which the
country was covered, and for his purposes was all that he could
expect. It was close enough to London to be extremely cheap,
for all wealthy persons had retired at least a hundred miles
from the throbbing heart of England; and yet it was as quiet as
he could wish. He was within ten minutes of Westminster on the
one side, and twenty minutes of the sea on the other; and his
constituency lay before him like a raised map. Further, since
the great London termini were but ten minutes away, there were
at his disposal the First Trunk lines to every big town in
England. For a politician of no great means, who was asked to
speak at Edinburgh on one evening and in Marseilles on the
next, he was as well placed as any man in Europe.
He was a pleasant-looking man, not much over thirty years
old; black wire-haired, clean-shaven, thin, virile, magnetic,
blue-eyed and white-skinned; and he appeared this day extremely
content with himself and the world. His lips moved slightly as
he worked, his eyes enlarged and diminished with excitement,
and more than once he paused and stared out again, smiling and
flushed.
Then a door opened; a middle-aged man came nervously in
with a bundle of papers, laid them down on the table without a
word, and turned to go out. Oliver lifted his hand for attention,
snapped a lever, and spoke.
"Well, Mr. Phillips?" he said.
"There is news from the East, sir," said the secretary.
Oliver shot a glance sideways, and laid his hand on the
bundle.
"Any complete message?" he asked.
"No, sir; it is interrupted again. Mr. Felsenburgh's name is
mentioned."
Oliver did not seem to hear; he lifted the flimsy printed
sheets with a sudden movement, and began turning them.
"The fourth from the top, Mr. Brand," said the secretary.
Oliver jerked his head impatiently, and the other went out as
if at a signal.
The fourth sheet from the top, printed in red on green,
seemed to absorb Oliver's attention altogether, for he read it
through two or three times, leaning back motionless in his
chair. Then he sighed, and stared again through the window.
Then once more the door opened, and a tall girl came in.
"Well, my dear?" she observed.
Oliver shook his head, with compressed lips.
"Nothing definite," he said. "Even less than usual. Listen."
He took up the green sheet and began to read aloud, as the
girl sat down in a window-seat on his left.
She was a very charming-looking creature, tall and slender,
with serious, ardent grey eyes, firm red lips, and a beautiful
carriage of head and shoulders. She had walked slowly across the
room as Oliver took up the paper, and now sat back in her brown
dress in a very graceful and stately attitude. She seemed to
listen with a deliberate kind of patience; but her eyes flickered
with interest.
"`Irkutsk--April--fourteen Yesterday--as--usual But--
rumoured--defection--from--Sufi--party Troops--continue--
gathering Felsenburgh--addressed--Buddhist--crowd Attempt--on
--Llama--last--Friday--work--of--Anarchists Felsenburgh--
leaving--for--Moscow--as--arranged he. . . .' There--that is
absolutely all," ended Oliver dispiritedly. "It's interrupted as
usual."
The girl began to swing a foot.
"I don't understand in the least," she said. "Who is
Felsenburgh, after all?"
"My dear child, that is what all the world is asking. Nothing
is known except that he was included in the American deputation
at the last moment. The Herald published his life last week;
but it has been contradicted. It is certain that he is quite a
young man, and that he has been quite obscure until now."
"Well, he is not obscure now," observed the girl.
"I know: it seems as if he were running the whole thing. One
never hears a word of the others. It's lucky he's on the right
side."
"And what do you think?"
Oliver turned vacant eyes again out of the window.
"I think it is touch and go," he said. "The only remarkable
thing is that here hardly anybody seems to realise it. It's too
big for the imagination, I suppose. There is no doubt that the
East has been preparing for a descent on Europe for these last
five years. They have only been checked by America; and this is
one last attempt to stop them. But why Felsenburgh should
come to the front----" he broke off. "He must be a good
linguist, at any rate. This is at least the fifth crowd he has
addressed; perhaps he is just the American interpreter. Christ!
I wonder who he is."
"Has he any other name?"
"Julian, I believe. One message said so."
"How did this come through?"
Oliver shook his head.
"Private enterprise," he said. "The European agencies have
stopped work. Every telegraph station is guarded night and day.
There are lines of volors strung out on every frontier. The
Empire means to settle this business without us."
"And if it goes wrong?"
"My dear Mabel--if hell breaks loose----" he threw out his
hands deprecatingly.
"And what is the Government doing?"
"Working night and day; so is the rest of Europe. It'll be
Armageddon with a vengeance if it comes to war."
"What chance do you see?"
"I see two chances," said Oliver slowly: "one, that they may
be afraid of America, and may hold their hands from sheer fear;
the other that they may be induced to hold their hands from
charity; if only they can be made to understand that co-
operation is the one hope of the world. But those damned
religions of theirs----"
The girl sighed, and looked out again on to the wide plain of
house-roofs below the window.
The situation was indeed as serious as it could be. That huge
Empire, consisting of a federalism of States under the Son of
Heaven (made possible by the merging of the Japanese and
Chinese dynasties and the fall of Russia), had been
consolidating its forces and learning its own power during the
last thirty-five years, ever since, in fact, it had laid its lean
yellow hands upon Australia and India. While the rest of the
world had learned the folly of war, ever since the fall of the
Russian republic under the combined attack of the yellow races,
the last had grasped its possibilities. It seemed now as if the
civilisation of the last century was to be swept back once more
into chaos. It was not that the mob of the East cared very
greatly; it was their rulers who had begun to stretch
themselves after an almost eternal lethargy, and it was hard to
imagine how they could be checked at this point. There was a
touch of grimness too in the rumour that religious fanaticism
was behind the movement, and that the patient East proposed at
last to proselytise by the modern equivalents of fire and sword
those who had laid aside for the most part all religious beliefs
except that in Humanity. To Oliver it was simply maddening. As
he looked from his window and saw that vast limit of London
laid peaceably before him, as his imagination ran out over
Europe and saw everywhere that steady triumph of commonsense
and fact over the wild fairy-stories of Christianity, it seemed
intolerable that there should be even a possibility that all
this should be swept back again into the barbarous turmoil of
sects and dogmas; for no less than this would be the result if
the East laid hands on Europe. Even Catholicism would revive,
he told himself, that strange faith that had blazed so often as
persecution had been dashed to quench it; and, of all forms of
faith, to Oliver's mind Catholicism was the most grotesque and
enslaving. And the prospect of all this honestly troubled him,
far more than the thought of the physical catastrophe and
bloodshed that would fall on Europe with the advent of the
East. There was but one hope on the religious side, as he had
told Mabel a dozen times, and that was that the Quietistic
Pantheism which for the last century had made such giant
strides in East and West alike, among Mohammedans, Buddhists,
Hindus, Confucianists and the rest, should avail to check the
supernatural frenzy that inspired their exoteric brethren.
Pantheism, he understood, was what he held himself; for him
"God" was the developing sum of created life, and impersonal
Unity was the essence of His being; competition then was the
great heresy that set men one against another and delayed all
progress; for, to his mind, progress lay in the merging of the
individual in the family, of the family in the commonwealth, of
the commonwealth in the continent, and of the continent in the
world. Finally, the world itself at any moment was no more
than the mood of impersonal life. It was, in fact, the Catholic
idea with the supernatural left out, a union of earthly fortunes,
an abandonment of individualism on the one side, and of
supernaturalism on the other. It was treason to appeal from
God Immanent to God Transcendent; there was no God
transcendent; God, so far as He could be known, was man.
Yet these two, husband and wife after a fashion--for they had
entered into that terminable contract now recognised
explicitly by the State--these two were very far from sharing
in the usual heavy dullness of mere materialists. The world,
for them, beat with one ardent life blossoming in flower and
beast and man, a torrent of beautiful vigour flowing from a
deep source and irrigating all that moved or felt. Its romance
was the more appreciable because it was comprehensible to the
minds that sprang from it; there were mysteries in it, but
mysteries that enticed rather than baffled, for they unfolded
new glories with every discovery that man could make; even
inanimate objects, the fossil, the electric current, the far-off
stars, these were dust thrown off by the Spirit of the World--
fragrant with His Presence and eloquent of His Nature. For
example, the announcement made by Klein, the astronomer,
twenty years before, that the inhabitation of certain planets
had become a certified fact--how vastly this had altered men's
views of themselves. But the one condition of progress and the
building of Jerusalem, on the planet that happened to be men's
dwelling place, was peace, not the sword which Christ brought or
that which Mahomet wielded; but peace that arose from, not
passed, understanding; the peace that sprang from a knowledge
that man was all and was able to develop himself only by
sympathy with his fellows. To Oliver and his wife, then, the
last century seemed like a revelation; little by little the old
superstitions had died, and the new light broadened; the Spirit
of the World had roused Himself, the sun had dawned in the
west; and now with horror and loathing they had seen the clouds
gather once more in the quarter whence all superstition had had
its birth.
* * * * * *
Mabel got up presently and came across to her husband.
"My dear," she said, "you must not be downhearted. It all may
pass as it passed before. It is a great thing that they are
listening to America at all. And this Mr. Felsenburgh seems to
be on the right side."
Oliver took her hand and kissed it.
(II)
Oliver seemed altogether depressed at breakfast, half-an-hour
later. His mother, an old lady of nearly eighty, who never
appeared till noon, seemed to see it at once, for after a look
or two at him and a word, she subsided into silence behind her
plate.
It was a pleasant little room in which they sat, immediately
behind Oliver's own, and was furnished, according to universal
custom, in light green. Its windows looked out upon a strip of
garden at the back, and the high creeper-grown wall that
separated that domain from the next. The furniture, too, was of
the usual sort; a sensible round table stood in the middle, with
three tall arm-chairs, with the proper angles and rests, drawn
up to it; and the centre of it, resting apparently on a broad
round column, held the dishes. It was thirty years now since the
practice of placing the dining-room above the kitchen, and of
raising and lowering the courses by hydraulic power into the
centre of the dining-table, had become universal in the houses
of the well-to-do. The floor consisted entirely of the asbestos
cork preparation invented in America, noiseless, clean, and
pleasant to both foot and eye.
Mabel broke the silence.
"And your speech to-morrow?" she asked, taking up her fork.
Oliver brightened a little, and began to discourse.
It seemed that Birmingham was beginning to fret. They were
crying out once more for free trade with America: European
facilities were not enough, and it was Oliver's business to keep
them quiet. It was useless, he proposed to tell them, to agitate
until the Eastern business was settled: they must not bother
the Government with such details just now. He was to tell them,
too, that the Government was wholly on their side; that it was
bound to come soon.
"They are pig-headed," he added fiercely; "pig-headed and
selfish; they are like children who cry for food ten minutes
before dinner-time: it is bound to come if they will wait a
little."
"And you will tell them so?"
"That they are pig-headed? Certainly."
Mabel looked at her husband with a pleased twinkle in her
eyes. She knew perfectly well that his popularity rested largely
on his outspokenness: folks liked to be scolded and abused by a
genial bold man who danced and gesticulated in a magnetic fury;
she liked it herself.
"How shall you go?" she asked.
"Volor. I shall catch the eighteen o'clock at Blackfriars; the
meeting is at nineteen, and I shall be back at twenty-one."
He addressed himself vigorously to his entrée, and his
mother looked up with a patient, old-woman smile.
Mabel began to drum her fingers softly on the damask.
"Please make haste, my dear," she said; "I have to be at
Brighton at three."
Oliver gulped his last mouthful, pushed his plate over the
line, glanced to see if all plates were there, and then put his
hand beneath the table.
Instantly, without a sound, the centre-piece vanished, and the
three waited unconcernedly while the clink of dishes came from
beneath.
Old Mrs. Brand was a hale-looking old lady, rosy and wrinkled,
with the mantilla head-dress of fifty years ago; but she, too
looked a little depressed this morning. The entrée was not very
successful, she thought; the new food-stuff was not up to the
old, it was a trifle gritty: she would see about it afterwards.
There was a clink, a soft sound like a push, and the centre-piece
snapped into its place, bearing an admirable imitation of a
roasted fowl.
* * * * * *
Oliver and his wife were alone again for a minute or two
after breakfast before Mabel started down the path to catch the
14* o'clock 4th grade sub-trunk line to the junction.
"What's the matter with mother?" he said.
"Oh! it's the food-stuff again: she's never got accustomed to
it; she says it doesn't suit her."
"Nothing else?"
"No, my dear, I am sure of it. She hasn't said a word lately."
Oliver watched his wife go down the path, reassured. He had
been a little troubled once or twice lately by an odd word or
two that his mother had let fall. She had been brought up a
Christian for a few years, and it seemed to him sometimes as if
it had left a taint. There was an old "Garden of the Soul" that
she liked to keep by her, though she always protested with an
appearance of scorn that it was nothing but nonsense. Still,
Oliver would have preferred that she had burnt it: superstition
was a desperate thing for retaining life, and, as the brain
weakened, might conceivably reassert itself. Christianity was
both wild and dull, he told himself, wild because of its obvious
grotesqueness and impossibility, and dull because it was so
utterly apart from the exhilarating stream of human life; it
crept dustily about still, he knew, in little dark churches here
and there; it screamed with hysterical sentimentality in
Westminster Cathedral which he had once entered and looked
upon with a kind of disgusted fury; it gabbled strange, false
words to the incompetent and the old and the half-witted. But
it would be too dreadful if his own mother ever looked upon it
again with favour.
Oliver himself, ever since he could remember, had been
violently opposed to the concessions to Rome and Ireland. It
was intolerable that these two places should be definitely
yielded up to this foolish, treacherous nonsense: they were hot-
beds of sedition; plague-spots on the face of humanity. He had
never agreed with those who said that it was better that all the
poison of the west should be gathered rather than dispersed.
But, at any rate, there it was. Rome had been given up wholly to
that old man in white in exchange for all the parish churches
and cathedrals of Italy, and it was understood that medieval
darkness reigned there supreme; and Ireland, after receiving
Home Rule thirty years before, had declared for Catholicism,
and opened her arms to Individualism in its most virulent
form. England had laughed and assented, for she was saved from
a quantity of agitation by the immediate departure of half her
Catholic population for that island, and had, consistently with
her Communist-colonial policy, granted every facility for
Individualism to reduce itself there ad absurdum. All kinds of
funny things were happening there: Oliver had read with a
bitter amusement of new appearances there, of a Woman in Blue
and shrines raised where her feet had rested; but he was
scarcely amused at Rome, for the movement to Turin of the
Italian Government had deprived the Republic of quite a
quantity of sentimental prestige, and had haloed the old
religious nonsense with all the meretriciousness of historical
association. However, it obviously could not last much longer:
the world was beginning to understand at last.
He stood a moment or two at the door after his wife had
gone, drinking in reassurance from that glorious vision of solid
sense that spread itself before his eyes: the endless house-
roofs; the high glass vaults of the public baths and
gymnasiums; the pinnacled schools where Citizenship was taught
each morning; the spider-like cranes and scaffoldings that rose
here and there; and even the few pricking spires did not
disconcert him. There it stretched away into the grey haze of
London, really beautiful, this vast hive of men and women who
had learnt at least the primary lesson of the gospel that there
was no God but man, no priest but the politician, no prophet
but the schoolmaster.
Then he went back once more to his speech-constructing.
* * * * * *
Mabel, too, was a little thoughtful as she sat with her paper
on her lap, spinning down the broad line to Brighton. This
Eastern news was more disconcerting to her than she allowed
her husband to see; yet it seemed incredible that there could
be any real danger of invasion. This western life was so
sensible and peaceful; folks had their feet at last upon the
rock, and it was unthinkable that they could ever be forced back
on to the mud-flats: it was contrary to the whole law of
development. Yet she could not but recognise that catastrophe
seemed one of nature's methods. . . .
She sat very quiet, glancing once or twice at the meagre
little scrap of news, and read the leading article upon it: that
too seemed significant of dismay. A couple of men were talking
in the half-compartment beyond on the same subject; one
described the Government engineering works that he had visited,
the breathless haste that dominated them; the other put in
interrogations and questions. There was not much comfort
there. There were no windows through which she could look; on
the main lines the speed was too great for the eyes; the long
compartment flooded with soft light bounded her horizon. She
stared at the moulded white ceiling, the delicious oak-framed
paintings, the deep spring-seats, the mellow globes overhead
that poured out radiance, at a mother and child diagonally
opposite her. Then the great chord sounded; the faint vibration
increased ever so slightly; and an instant later the automatic
doors ran back, and she stepped out on to the platform of
Brighton station.
As she went down the steps leading to the station square she
noticed a priest going before her. He seemed a very upright and
sturdy old man, for though his hair was white he walked steadily
and strongly. At the foot of the steps he stopped and half
turned, and then, to her surprise, she saw that his face was that
of a young man, fine-featured and strong, with black eyebrows
and very bright grey eyes. Then she passed on and began to
cross the square in the direction of her aunt's house.
Then without the slightest warning, except one shrill hoot
from overhead, a number of things happened.
A great shadow whirled across the sunlight at her feet, a
sound of rending tore the air, and a noise like a giant's sigh;
and, as she stopped bewildered, with a noise like ten thousand
smashed kettles, a huge thing crashed on the rubber pavement
before her, where it lay, filling half the square, writhing long
wings on its upper side that beat and whirled like the flappers
of some ghastly extinct monster, pouring out human screams,
and beginning almost instantly to crawl with broken life.
Mabel scarcely knew what happened next; but she found
herself a moment later forced forward by some violent pressure
from behind, till she stood shaking from head to foot, with
some kind of smashed body of a man moaning and stretching at
her feet. There was a sort of articulate language coming from
it; she caught distinctly the names of Jesus and Mary; then a
voice hissed suddenly in her ears:
"Let me through. I am a priest."
She stood there a moment longer, dazed by the suddenness of
the whole affair, and watched almost unintelligently the grey-
haired young priest on his knees, with his coat torn open, and a
crucifix out; she saw him bend close, wave his hand in a swift
sign, and heard a murmur of a language she did not know. Then
he was up again, holding the crucifix before him, and she saw
him begin to move forward into the midst of the red-flooded
pavement looking this way and that as if for a signal. Down the
steps of the great hospital on her right came figures running
now, hatless, each carrying what looked like an old-fashioned
camera. She knew what those men were, and her heart leapt in
relief. They were the ministers of euthanasia. Then she felt
herself taken by the shoulder and pulled back, and immediately
found herself in the front rank of a crowd that was swaying and
crying out, and behind a line of police and civilians who had
formed themselves into a cordon to keep the pressure back.
(III)
Oliver was in a panic of terror as his mother, half an hour
later, ran in with the news that one of the Government volors
had fallen in the station-square at Brighton just after the 14*
train had discharged its passengers. He knew quite well what
that meant, for he remembered one such accident ten years
before, just after the law forbidding private volors had been
passed. It meant that every living creature in it was killed and
probably many more in the place where it fell--and what then?
The message was clear enough; she would certainly be in the
square at that time.
He sent a desperate wire to her aunt asking for news; and sat,
shaking in his chair, awaiting the answer. His mother sat by
him.
"Please God----" she sobbed out once, and stopped confounded
as he turned on her.
But Fate was merciful, and three minutes before Mr. Phillips
toiled up the path with the answer, Mabel herself came into the
room, rather pale and smiling.
"Christ!" cried Oliver, and gave one huge sob as he sprang up.
She had not a great deal to tell him. There was no
explanation of the disaster published as yet; it seemed that
the wings on one side had simply ceased to work.
She described the shadow, the hiss of sound, and the crash.
Then she stopped.
"Well, my dear?" said her husband, still rather white beneath
the eyes as he sat close to her patting her hand.
"There was a priest there," said Mabel. "I saw him before, at
the station."
Oliver gave a little hysterical snort of laughter.
"He was on his knees at once," she said, "with his crucifix,
even before the doctors came. My dear, do people really believe
all that?"
"Why, they think they do," said her husband.
"It was all so--so sudden; and there he was, just as if he had
been expecting it all. Oliver, how can they?"
"Why, people will believe anything if they begin early
enough."
"And the man seemed to believe it too--the dying man, I
mean. I saw his eyes."
She stopped.
"Well, my dear?"
"Oliver, what do you say to people when they are dying?"
"Say! Why, nothing! What can I say? But I don't think I've
ever seen anyone die."
"Nor have I till to-day," said the girl, and shivered a little.
"The euthanasia people were soon at work."
Oliver took her hand gently.
"My darling, it must have been frightful. Why, you're
trembling still."
"No; but listen. . . . You know, if I had had anything to say I
could have said it too. They were all just in front of me: I
wondered; then I knew I hadn't. I couldn't possibly have talked
about Humanity."
"My dear, it's all very sad; but you know it doesn't really
matter. It's all over."
"And--and they've just stopped?"
"Why, yes."
Mabel compressed her lips a little; then she sighed. She had
an agitated sort of meditation in the train. She knew perfectly
that it was sheer nerves; but she could not just yet shake them
off. As she had said, it was the first time she had seen death.
"And that priest--that priest doesn't think so?"
"My dear, I'll tell you what he believes. He believes that
that man whom he showed the crucifix to, and said those words
over, is alive somewhere, in spite of his brain being dead: he is
not quite sure where; but he is either in a kind of smelting
works being slowly burnt; or, if he is very lucky, and that piece
of wood took effect, he is somewhere beyond the clouds, before
Three Persons who are only One although They are Three; that
there are quantities of other people there, a Woman in Blue, a
great many others in white with their heads under their arms,
and still more with their heads on one side; and that they've
all got harps and go on singing for ever and ever, and walking
about on the clouds, and liking it very much indeed. He thinks,
too, that all these nice people are perpetually looking down
upon the aforesaid smelting-works, and praising the Three Great
Persons for making them. That's what the priest believes. Now
you know it's not likely; that kind of thing may be very nice,
but it isn't true."
Mabel smiled pleasantly. She had never heard it put so well.
"No, my dear, you're quite right. That sort of thing isn't
true. How can he believe it? He looked quite intelligent!"
"My dear girl, if I had told you in your cradle that the moon
was green cheese, and had hammered at you ever since, every day
and all day, that it was, you'd very nearly believe it by now.
Why, you know in your heart that the euthanatisers are the real
priests. Of course you do."
Mabel sighed with satisfaction and stood up.
"Oliver, you're a most comforting person. I do like you!
There! I must go to my room: I'm all shaky still."
Half across the room she stopped and put out a shoe.
"Why----" she began faintly.
There was a curious rusty-looking splash upon it; and her
husband saw her turn white. He rose abruptly.
"My dear," he said, "don't be foolish."
She looked at him, smiled bravely, and went out.
* * * * * *
When she was gone, he still sat on a moment where she had
left him. Dear me! how pleased he was! He did not like to think
of what life would have been without her. He had known her
since she was twelve--that was seven years ago--and last year
they had gone together to the district official to make their
contract. She had really become very necessary to him. Of
course the world could get on without her, and he supposed that
he could too; but he did not want to have to try. He knew
perfectly well, for it was his creed of human love, that there
was between them a double affection, of mind as well as body;
and there was absolutely nothing else: but he loved her quick
intuitions, and to hear his own thought echoed so perfectly. It
was like two flames added together to make a third taller than
either: of course one flame could burn without the other--in
fact, one would have to, one day--but meantime the warmth and
light were exhilarating. Yes, he was delighted that she happened
to be clear of the falling volor.
He gave no more thought to his exposition of the Christian
creed; it was a mere commonplace to him that Catholics
believed that kind of thing; it was no more blasphemous to his
mind so to describe it, than it would be to laugh at a Fijian
idol with mother-of-pearl eyes and a horse-hair wig; it was
simply impossible to treat it seriously. He, too, had wondered
once or twice in his life how human beings could believe such
rubbish; but psychology had helped him, and he knew now well
enough that suggestion will do almost anything. And it was this
hateful thing that had so long restrained the euthanasia
movement with all its splendid mercy.
His brows wrinkled a little as he remembered his mother's
exclamation, "Please God"; then he smiled at the poor old
thing and her pathetic childishness, and turned once more to
his table, thinking in spite of himself of his wife's hesitation
as she had seen the splash of blood on her shoe. Blood! Yes;
that was as much a fact as anything else. How was it to be dealt
with? Why, by the glorious creed of Humanity--that splendid God
who died and rose again ten thousand times a day, who had died
daily like the old cracked fanatic Saul of Tarsus, ever since the
world began, and who rose again, not once like the Carpenter's
Son, but with every child that came into the world. That was
the answer; and was it not overwhelmingly sufficient?
* * * * * *
Mr. Phillips came in an hour later with another bundle of
papers.
PERCY Franklin's correspondence with the Cardinal-Protector of
England occupied him directly for at least two hours every day,
and for nearly eight hours indirectly.
For the past eight years the methods of the Holy See had
once more been revised with a view to modern needs, and now
every important province throughout the world possessed not
only an administrative metropolitan but a representative in
Rome whose business it was to be in touch with the Pope on the
one side and the people he represented on the other. In other
words, centralisation had gone forward rapidly, in accordance
with the laws of life; and, with centralisation, freedom of
method and expansion of power. England's Cardinal-Protector
was one Abbot Martin, a Benedictine, and it was Percy's business,
as of a dozen more bishops, priests and laymen (with whom, by
the way, he was forbidden to hold any formal consultation) to
write a long daily letter to him on affairs that came under his
notice.
It was a curious life, therefore, that Percy led. He had a
couple of rooms assigned to him in Archbishop's House at
Westminster, and was attached loosely to the Cathedral staff,
although with considerable liberty. He rose early, and went to
meditation for an hour, after which he said his mass. He took
his coffee soon after, said a little office, and then settled
down to map out his letter. At ten o'clock he was ready to
receive callers, and till noon he was generally busy with both
those who came to see him on their own responsibility and his
staff of half-a-dozen reporters whose business it was to bring
him marked paragraphs in the newspapers and their own
comments. He then breakfasted with the other priests in the
house, and set out soon after to call on people whose opinion
was necessary, returning for a cup of tea soon after sixteen
o'clock. Then he settled down, after the rest of his office and a
visit to the Blessed Sacrament, to compose his letter, which
though short, needed a great deal of care and sifting. After
dinner he made a few notes for next day, received visitors
again, and went to bed soon after twenty-two o'clock. Twice a
week it was his business to assist at Vespers in the afternoon,
and he usually sang high mass on Saturdays.
It was, therefore, a curiously distracting life, with peculiar
dangers.
It was one day, a week or two after his visit to Brighton,
that he was just finishing his letter, when his servant looked
in to tell him that Father Francis was below.
"In ten minutes," said Percy, without looking up.
He snapped off his last lines, drew out the sheet, and settled
down to read it over, translating it unconsciously from Latin
to English.
"WESTMINSTER,
"May 14th.
"EMINENCE,
"Since yesterday I have a little more information. It appears
certain that the Bill establishing Esperanto for all State
purposes will be brought in in June. I have had this from
Johnson. This, as I have pointed out before, is the very last
stone in our consolidation with the continent, which, at
present, is to be regretted. . . . A great access of Jews to
Freemasonry is to be expected; hitherto they have held aloof to
some extent, but the `abolition of the Idea of God' is tending
to draw in those Jews, now greatly on the increase once more,
who repudiate all notion of a personal Messiah. It is
`Humanity' here, too, that is at work. To-day I heard the Rabbi
Simeon speak to this effect in the City, and was impressed by
the applause he received. . . . Yet among others an expectation
is growing that a man will presently be found to lead the
Communist movement and unite their forces more closely. I
enclose a verbose cutting from the New People to that effect;
and it is echoed everywhere. They say that the cause must give
birth to one such soon; that they have had prophets and
precursors for a hundred years past, and lately a cessation of
them. It is strange how this coincides superficially with
Christian ideas. Your Eminence will observe that a simile of
the `ninth wave' is used with some eloquence. . . . I hear to-day
of the secession of an old Catholic family, the Wargraves of
Norfolk, with their chaplain Micklem, who it seems has been
busy in this direction for some while. The Epoch announces it
with satisfaction, owing to the peculiar circumstances; but
unhappily such events are not uncommon now. . . . There is
much distrust among the laity. Seven priests in Westminster
diocese have left us within the last three months; on the other
hand, I have pleasure in telling your Eminence that his Grace
received into Catholic Communion this morning the ex-Anglican
Bishop of Carlisle, with half-a-dozen of his clergy. This has
been expected for some weeks past. I append also cuttings from
the Tribune, the London Trumpet, and the Observer, with my
comments upon them. Your Eminence will see how great the
excitement is with regard to the last.
"Recommendation. That formal excommunication of the
Wargraves and these eight priests should be issued in Norfolk
and Westminster respectively, and no further notice taken."
Percy laid down the sheet, gathered up the half-dozen other
papers that contained his extracts and running commentary,
signed the last, and slipped the whole into the printed
envelope that lay ready.
Then he took up his biretta and went to the lift.
* * * * * *
The moment he came into the glass-doored parlour he saw
that the crisis was come, if not passed already. Father Francis
looked miserably ill, but there was a curious hardness, too,
about his eyes and mouth, as he stood waiting. He shook his
head abruptly.
"I have come to say good-bye, father. I can bear it no more."
Percy was careful to show no emotion at all. He made a
little sign to a chair, and himself sat down too.
"It is an end of everything," said the other again in a
perfectly steady voice. "I believe nothing. I have believed
nothing for a year now."
"You have felt nothing, you mean," said Percy.
"That won't do, father," went on the other. "I tell you there
is nothing left. I can't even argue now. It is just good-bye."
Percy had nothing to say. He had talked to this man during a
period of over eight months, ever since Father Francis had first
confided in him that his faith was going. He understood
perfectly what a strain it had been; he felt bitterly
compassionate towards this poor creature who had become
caught up somehow into the dizzy triumphant whirl of the New
Humanity. External facts were horribly strong just now; and
faith, except to one who had learned that Will and Grace were
all and emotion nothing, was as a child crawling about in the
midst of some huge machinery: it might survive or it might
not; but it required nerves of steel to keep steady. It was hard
to know where blame could be assigned; yet Percy's faith told
him that there was blame due. In the ages of faith a very
inadequate grasp of religion would pass muster; in these
searching days none but the humble and the pure could stand
the test for long, unless indeed they were protected by a
miracle of ignorance. The alliance of Psychology and
Materialism did indeed seem, looked at from one angle, to
account for everything; it needed a robust supernatural
perception to understand their practical inadequacy. And as
regards Father Francis's personal responsibility, he could not
help feeling that the other had allowed ceremonial to play too
great a part in his religion, and prayer too little. In him the
external had absorbed the internal.
So he did not allow his sympathy to show itself in his
bright eyes.
"You think it my fault, of course," said the other sharply.
"My dear father," said Percy, motionless in his chair, "I know
it is your fault. Listen to me. You say Christianity is absurd
and impossible. Now, you know, it cannot be that! It may be
untrue,--I am not speaking of that now, even though I am
perfectly certain that it is absolutely true--but it cannot be
absurd so long as educated and virtuous people continue to hold
it. To say that it is absurd is simple pride; it is to dismiss
all who believe in it as not merely mistaken, but unintelligent
as well----"
"Very well, then," interrupted the other; "then suppose I
withdraw that, and simply say that I do not believe it to be
true."
"You do not withdraw it," continued Percy serenely; "you
still really believe it to be absurd: you have told me so a
dozen times. Well, I repeat, that is pride, and quite sufficient
to account for it all. It is the moral attitude that matters.
There may be other things too----"
Father Francis looked up sharply.
"Oh! the old story!" he said sneeringly.
"If you tell me on your word of honour that there is no
woman in the case, or no particular programme of sin you
propose to work out, I shall believe you. But it is an old story,
as you say."
"I swear to you there is not," cried the other.
"Thank God then!" said Percy. "There are fewer obstacles to a
return of faith."
There was silence for a moment after that. Percy had really
no more to say. He had talked to him, of the inner life again
and again, in which verities are seen to be true, and acts of
faith are ratified; he had urged prayer and humility till he was
almost weary of the names; and had been met by the retort that
this was to advise sheer self-hypnotism; and he had despaired
of making clear to one who did not see it for himself that
while Love and Faith may be called self-hypnotism from one
angle, yet from another they are as much realities as, for
example, artistic faculties, and need similar cultivation; that
they produce a conviction that they are convictions, that they
handle and taste things which when handled and tasted are
overwhelmingly more real and objective than the things of
sense. Evidences seemed to mean nothing to this man.
So he was silent now, chilled himself by the presence of this
crisis, looking unseeingly out upon the plain, little old-world
parlour, its tall window, its strip of matting, conscious chiefly
of the dreary hopelessness of this human brother of his who
had eyes but did not see, ears and was deaf. He wished he would
say good-bye, and go. There was no more to be done.
Father Francis, who had been sitting in a lax kind of huddle,
seemed to know his thoughts, and sat up suddenly.
"You are tired of me," he said. "I will go."
"I am not tired of you, my dear father," said Percy simply.
"I am only terribly sorry. You see I know that it is all true."
The other looked at him heavily.
"And I know that it is not," he said. "It is very beautiful; I
wish I could believe it. I don't think I shall be ever happy
again--but--but there it is."
Percy sighed. He had told him so often that the heart is as
divine a gift as the mind, and that to neglect it in the search
for God is to seek ruin, but this priest had scarcely seen the
application to himself. He had answered with the old
psychological arguments that the suggestions of education
accounted for everything.
"I suppose you will cast me off," said the other.
"It is you who are leaving me," said Percy. "I cannot follow,
if you mean that."
"But--but cannot we be friends?"
A sudden heat touched the elder priest's heart.
"Friends?" he said. "Is sentimentality all you mean by
friendship? What kind of friends can we be?"
The other's face became suddenly heavy.
"I thought so."
"John!" cried Percy. "You see that, do you not? How can we
pretend anything when you do not believe in God? For I do you
the honour of thinking that you do not."
Francis sprang up.
"Well----" he snapped. "I could not have believed--I am
going."
He wheeled towards the door.
"John!" said Percy again. "Are you going like this? Can you
not shake hands?"
The other wheeled again, with heavy anger in his face.
"Why, you said you could not be friends with me!"
Percy's mouth opened. Then he understood, and smiled.
"Oh! that is all you mean by friendship, is it?--I beg your
pardon. Oh! we can be polite to one another, if you like."
He still stood holding out his hand. Father Francis looked at
it a moment, his lips shook: then once more he turned, and
went out without a word.
(II)
Percy stood motionless until he heard the automatic bell
outside tell him that Father Francis was really gone, then he
went out himself and turned towards the long passage leading to
the Cathedral. As he passed out through the sacristy he heard
far in front the murmur of an organ, and on coming through
into the chapel used as a parish church he perceived that
Vespers were not yet over in the great choir. He came straight
down the aisle, turned to the right, crossed the centre and
knelt down.
It was drawing on towards sunset, and the huge dark place was
lighted here and there by patches of ruddy London light that
lay on the gorgeous marble and gildings finished at last by a
wealthy convert. In front of him rose up the choir, with a line
of white surpliced and furred canons on either side, and the
vast baldachino in the midst, beneath which burned the six
lights as they had burned day by day for more than a century;
behind that again lay the high line of the apse-choir with the
dim, window-pierced vault above where Christ reigned in
majesty. He let his eyes wander round for a few moments before
beginning his deliberate prayer, drinking in the glory of the
place, listening to the thunderous chorus, the peal of the
organ, and the thin mellow voice of the priest. There on the
left shone the refracted glow of the lamps that burned before
the Lord in the Sacrament, on the right a dozen candles winked
here and there at the foot of the gaunt images, high overhead
hung the gigantic cross with that lean, emaciated Poor Man Who
called all who looked on Him to the embraces of a God.
Then he hid his face in his hands, drew a couple of long
breaths, and set to work.
He began, as his custom was in mental prayer, by a deliberate
act of self-exclusion from the world of sense. Under the image
of sinking beneath a surface he forced himself downwards and
inwards, till the peal of the organ, the shuffle of footsteps,
the rigidity of the chair-back beneath his wrists--all seemed
apart and external, and he was left a single person with a
beating heart, an intellect that suggested image after image,
and emotions that were too languid to stir themselves. Then he
made his second descent, renounced all that he possessed and
was, and became conscious that even the body was left behind,
and that his mind and heart, awed by the Presence in which they
found themselves, clung close and obedient to the will which
was their lord and protector. He drew another long breath, or
two, as he felt that Presence surge about him; he repeated a few
mechanical words, and sank to that peace which follows the
relinquishment of thought.
There he rested for a while. Far above him sounded the
ecstatic music, the cry of trumpets and the shrilling of the
flutes; but they were as insignificant street-noises to one who
was falling asleep. He was within the veil of things now, beyond
the barriers of sense and reflection, in that secret place to
which he had learnt the road by endless effort, in that strange
region where realities are evident, where perceptions go to and
fro with the swiftness of light, where the swaying will catches
now this now that act, moulds it and speeds it; where all
things meet, where truth is known and handled and tasted, where
God Immanent is one with God Transcendent, where the meaning
of the external world is evident through its inner side, and the
Church and its mysteries are seen from within a haze of glory.
So he lay a few moments, absorbing and resting.
Then he aroused himself to consciousness and began to speak.
"Lord, I am here, and Thou art here. I know Thee. There is
nothing else but Thou and I. . . . I lay this all in Thy hands--
Thy apostate priest, Thy people, the world, and myself. I spread
it before Thee--I spread it before Thee."
He paused, poised in the act, till all of which he thought lay
like a plain before a peak.
. . . "Myself, Lord--there but for Thy grace should I be going,
in darkness and misery. It is Thou Who dost preserve me.
Maintain and finish Thy work within my soul. Let me not falter
for one instant. If Thou withdraw Thy hand I fall into utter
nothingness."
So his soul stood a moment, with outstretched appealing
hands, helpless and confident. Then the will flickered in self-
consciousness, and he repeated acts of faith, hope and love to
steady it. Then he drew another long breath, feeling the
Presence tingle and shake about him, and began again.
"Lord; look on Thy people. Many are falling from Thee. Ne in
æternum irascaris nobis. Ne in æternum irascaris nobis. . . . I
unite myself with all saints and angels and Mary Queen of
Heaven; look on them and me, and hear us. Emitte lucem tuam
et veritatem tuam. Thy light and Thy truth! Lay not on us
heavier burdens than we can bear. Lord, why dost Thou not
speak!"
He writhed himself forward in a passion of expectant desire,
hearing his muscles crack in the effort. Once more he relaxed
himself; and the swift play of wordless acts began which he
knew to be the very heart of prayer. The eyes of his soul flew
hither and thither, from Calvary to heaven and back again to
the tossing troubled earth. He saw Christ dying of desolation
while the earth rocked and groaned; Christ reigning as a priest
upon His Throne in robes of light, Christ patient and
inexorably silent within the Sacramental species; and to each
in turn he directed the eyes of the Eternal Father. . . .
Then he waited for communications, and they came, so soft
and delicate, passing like shadows, that his will sweated blood
and tears in the effort to catch and fix them and
correspond. . . .
He saw the Body Mystical in its agony, strained over the
world as on a cross, silent with pain; he saw this and that
nerve wrenched and twisted, till pain presented it to himself as
under the guise of flashes of colour; he saw the life-blood drop
by drop run down from His head and hands and feet. The world
was gathered mocking and good-humoured beneath. "He saved
others: Himself He cannot save. . . . Let Christ come down from
the Cross and we will believe." Far away behind bushes and in
holes of the ground the friends of Jesus peeped and sobbed;
Mary herself was silent, pierced by seven swords; the disciple
whom He loved had no words of comfort.
He saw, too, how no word would be spoken from heaven; the
angels themselves were bidden to put sword into sheath, and
wait on the eternal patience of God, for the agony was hardly
yet begun; there were a thousand horrors yet before the end
could come, that final sum of crucifixion. . . . He must wait
and watch, content to stand there and do nothing; and the
Resurrection must seem to him no more than a dreamed-of hope.
There was the Sabbath yet to come, while the Body Mystical
must lie in its sepulchre cut off from light, and even the
dignity of the Cross must be withdrawn and the knowledge that
Jesus lived. That inner world, to which by long effort he had
learned the way, was all alight with agony; it was bitter as
brine, it was of that pale luminosity that is the utmost
product of pain, it hummed in his ears with a note that rose to
a scream . . . it pressed upon him, penetrated him, stretched
him as on a rack. . . . And with that his will grew sick and
nerveless.
"Lord! I cannot bear it!" he moaned. . . .
In an instant he was back again, drawing long breaths of
misery. He passed his tongue over his lips, and opened his eyes
on the darkening apse before him. The organ was silent now, and
the choir was gone, and the lights out. The sunset colour, too,
had faded from the walls, and grim cold faces looked down on
him from wall and vault. He was back again on the surface of
life; the vision had melted; he scarcely knew what it was that
he had seen.
But he must gather up the threads, and by sheer effort absorb
them. He must pay his duty, too, to the Lord that gave Himself
to the senses as well as to the inner spirit. So he rose, stiff
and constrained, and passed across to the Chapel of the Holy
Sacrament.
As he came out from the block of chairs, very upright and
tall, with his biretta once more on his white hair, he saw an
old woman watching him very closely. He hesitated an instant,
wondering whether she were a penitent, and as he hesitated she
made a movement towards him.
"I beg your pardon, sir," she began.
She was not a Catholic then. He lifted his biretta.
"Can I do anything for you?" he asked.
"I beg your pardon, sir, but were you at Brighton, at the
accident two months ago?"
"I was."
"Ah! I thought so: my daughter-in-law saw you then."
Percy had a spasm of impatience: he was a little tired of
being identified by his white hair and young face.
"Were you there, madam?"
She looked at him doubtfully and curiously, moving her old
eyes up and down his figure. Then she recollected herself.
"No, sir; it was my daughter-in-law--I beg your pardon, sir,
but----"
"Well?" asked Percy, trying to keep the impatience out of his
voice.
"Are you the Archbishop, sir?"
The priest smiled, showing his white teeth.
"No, madam: I am just a poor priest. Dr. Cholmondeley is
Archbishop. I am Father Percy Franklin."
She said nothing, but still looking at him made a little old-
world movement of a bow; and Percy passed on to the dim,
splendid chapel to pay his devotions.
(III)
There was great talk that night at dinner among the priests
as to the extraordinary spread of Freemasonry. It had been
going on for many years now, and Catholics perfectly recognised
its dangers, for the profession of Masonry had been for some
centuries rendered incompatible with religion through the
Church's unswerving condemnation of it. A man must choose
between that and his faith. Things had developed
extraordinarily during the last century. First there had been
the organised assault upon the Church in France; and what
Catholics had always suspected then became a certainty in the
revelations of 1918, when P. Gerôme, the Dominican and ex-
Mason, had made his disclosures with regard to the Mark-Masons.
It had become evident then that Catholics had been right, and
that Masonry, in its higher grades at least, had been
responsible throughout the world for the strange movement
against religion. But he had died in his bed, and the public had
been impressed by that fact. Then came the splendid donations
in France and Italy--to hospitals, orphanages, and the like; and
once more suspicion began to disappear. After all, it seemed,
--and continued to seem, for seventy years and more--that
Masonry was nothing more than a vast philanthropical society.
Now once more men had their doubts.
"I hear that Felsenburgh is a Mason," observed Monsignor
Macintosh, the Cathedral Administrator. "A Grand-Master or
something."
"But who is Felsenburgh?" put in a young priest.
Monsignor pursed his lips and shook his head. He was one of
those humble persons as proud of ignorance as others of
knowledge. He boasted that he never read the papers nor any
book except those that had received the imprimatur; it was a
priest's business, he often remarked, to preserve the faith, not
to acquire worldly knowledge. Percy had occasionally rather
envied his point of view.
"He's a mystery," said another priest, Father Blackmore; "but
he seems to be causing great excitement. They were selling his
`Life' to-day on the Embankment."
"I met an American senator," put in Percy, "three days ago,
who told me that even there they know nothing of him, except
his extraordinary eloquence. He only appeared last year, and
seems to have carried everything before him by quite unusual
methods. He is a great linguist, too. That is why they took him
to Irkutsk."
"Well: the Masons----" went on Monsignor. "It is very
serious. In the last month four of my penitents have left me
because of it."
"Their inclusion of women was their master-stroke," growled
Father Blackmore, helping himself to claret.
"It is extraordinary that they hesitated so long about that,"
observed Percy.
A couple of the others added their evidence. It appeared that
they, too, had lost penitents lately through the spread of
Masonry. It was rumoured that a Pastoral was a-preparing
upstairs on the subject.
Monsignor shook his head ominously.
"More is wanted than that," he said.
Percy pointed, out that the Church had said her last word
several centuries ago. She had laid her excommunication on all
members of secret societies, and there was really no more that
she could do.
"Except bring it before her children again and again," put in
Monsignor. "I shall preach on it next Sunday."
* * * * * *
Percy dotted down a note when he reached his room,
determining to say another word or two on the subject to the
Cardinal-Protector. He had mentioned Freemasonry often before,
but it seemed time for another remark. Then he opened his
letters, first turning to one which he recognised as from the
Cardinal.
It seemed a curious coincidence, as he read a series of
questions that Cardinal Martin's letter contained, that one of
them should be on this very subject. It ran as follows:
"What of Masonry? Felsenburgh is said to be one. Gather all
the gossip you can about him. Send any English or American
biographies of him. Are you still losing Catholics through
Masonry?"
He ran his eyes down the rest of the questions. They chiefly
referred to previous remarks of his own, but twice, even in
them, Felsenburgh's name appeared.
He laid the paper down and considered a little.
It was very curious, he thought, how this man's name was in
everyone's mouth, in spite of the fact that so little was known
about him. He had bought in the streets, out of curiosity, three
photographs that professed to represent this strange person,
and though one of them might be genuine they all three could
not be. He drew them out of a pigeon-hole, and spread them
before him.
One represented a fierce, bearded creature like a Cossack,
with round staring eyes. No: intrinsic evidence condemned this:
it was exactly how a coarse imagination would have pictured a
man who seemed to be having a great influence in the East.
The second showed a fat face with little eyes and a chin-
beard. That might conceivably be genuine: he turned it over and
saw the name of a New York firm on the back. Then he turned to
the third. This presented a long, clean-shaven face with pince-
nez, undeniably clever, but scarcely strong: and Felsenburgh was
obviously a strong man.
Percy inclined to think the second was the most probable;
but they were all unconvincing; and he shuffled them carelessly
together and replaced them.
Then he put his elbows on the table, and began to think.
He tried to remember what Mr. Varhaus, the American
senator, had told him of Felsenburgh; yet it did not seem
sufficient to account for the facts. Felsenburgh, it seemed, had
employed none of those methods common in modern politics. He
controlled no newspapers, vituperated nobody, championed
nobody: he had no picked underlings; he used no bribes; there
were no monstrous crimes alleged against him. It seemed rather
as if his originality lay in his clean hands and his stainless
past--that, and his magnetic character. He was the kind of
figure that belonged rather to the age of chivalry: a pure,
clean, compelling personality, like a radiant child. He had
taken people by surprise, then, rising out of the heaving dun-
coloured waters of American socialism like a vision--from
those waters so fiercely restrained from breaking into storm
ever since the extraordinary social revolution under Mr.
Hearst's disciples, a century ago. That had been the end of
plutocracy; the famous old laws of 1914 had burst some of the
stinking bubbles of the time; and the enactments of 1916 and
1917 had prevented their forming again in anything like their
previous force. It had been the salvation of America,
undoubtedly, even if that salvation were of a dreary and
uninspiring description; and now out of the flat socialistic
level had arisen this romantic figure utterly unlike any that
had preceded it. . . . So the senator had hinted. . . . It was too
complicated for Percy just now, and he gave it up.
It was a weary world, he told himself, turning his eyes
homewards. Everything seemed so hopeless and ineffective. He
tried not to reflect on his fellow-priests, but for the fiftieth
time he could not help seeing that they were not the men for
the present situation. It was not that he preferred himself; he
knew perfectly well that he, too, was fully as incompetent: had
he not proved to be so with poor Father Francis, and scores of
others who had clutched at him in their agony during the last
ten years? Even the Archbishop, holy man as he was, with all
his childlike faith--was that the man to lead English Catholics
and confound their enemies? There seemed no giants on the
earth in these days. What in the world was to be done? He buried
his face in his hands. . . .
Yes; what was wanted was a new Order in the Church; the old
ones were rule-bound through no fault of their own. An Order
was wanted without habit or tonsure, without traditions or
customs, an Order with nothing but entire and whole-hearted
devotion, without pride even in their most sacred privileges,
without a past history in which they might take complacent
refuge. They must be franc-tireurs of Christ's Army; like the
Jesuits, but without their fatal reputation, which, again, was no
fault of their own. . . . But there must be a Founder--Who, in
God's Name?--a Founder nudus sequens Christum nudum. . . . Yes
--Franc-tireurs--priests, bishops, laymen and women--with the
three vows of course, and a special clause forbidding utterly
and for ever their ownership of corporate wealth.--Every gift
received must be handed to the bishop of the diocese in which
it was given, who must provide them himself with necessaries of
life and travel. Oh!--what could they not do? . . . He was off in
a rhapsody.
Presently he recovered, and called himself a fool. Was not
that scheme as old as the eternal hills, and as useless for
practical purposes? Why, it had been the dream of every zealous
man since the First Year of Salvation that such an Order should
be founded! . . . He was a fool. . . .
Then once more he began to think of it all over again.
Surely it was this which was wanted against the Masons; and
women, too.--Had not scheme after scheme broken down because
men had forgotten the power of women? It was that lack that
had ruined Napoleon: he had trusted Josephine, and she had
failed him; so he had trusted no other woman. In the Catholic
Church, too, woman had been given no active work but either
menial or connected with education: and was there not room for
other activities than those? Well, it was useless to think of it.
It was not his affair. If Papa Angelicus who now reigned in Rome
had not thought of it, why should a foolish, conceited priest in
Westminster set himself up to do so?
So he beat himself on the breast once more, and took up his
office-book.
He finished in half an hour, and again sat thinking; but this
time it was of poor Father Francis. He wondered what he was
doing now; whether he had taken off the Roman collar of
Christ's familiar slaves? The poor devil! And how far was he,
Percy Franklin, responsible?
When a tap came at his door presently, and Father Blackmore
looked in for a talk before going to bed, Percy told him what
had happened.
Father Blackmore removed his pipe and sighed deliberately.
"I knew it was coming," he said. "Well, well."
"He has been honest enough," explained Percy. "He told me
eight months ago he was in trouble."
Father Blackmore drew upon his pipe thoughtfully.
"Father Franklin," he said, "things are really very serious.
There is the same story everywhere. What in the world is
happening?"
Percy paused before answering.
"I think these things go in waves," he said.
"Waves, do you think?" said the other.
"What else?"
Father Blackmore looked at him intently.
"It is more like a dead calm, it seems to me," he said. "Have
you ever been in a typhoon?"
Percy shook his head.
"Well," went on the other, "the most ominous thing is the
calm. The sea is like oil; you feel half-dead: you can do
nothing. Then comes the storm."
Percy looked at him, interested. He had not seen this mood
in the priest before.
"Before every great crash there comes this calm. It is always
so in history. It was so before the Eastern War; it was so
before the French Revolution. It was so before the Reformation.
There is a kind of oily heaving; and everything is languid. So
everything has been in America, too, for over eighty years. . . .
Father Franklin, I think something is going to happen."
"Tell me," said Percy, leaning forward.
"Well, I saw Templeton a week before he died, and he put the
idea in my head. . . . Look here, father. It may be this Eastern
affair that is coming on us; but somehow I don't think it is. It
is in religion that something is going to happen. At least, so I
think. . . . Father, who in God's name is Felsenburgh?"
Percy was so startled at the sudden introduction of this
name again, that he stared a moment without speaking.
Outside, the summer night was very still. There was a faint
vibration now and again from the underground track that ran
twenty yards from the house where they sat; but the streets
were quiet enough round the Cathedral. Once a hoot rang far
away, as if some ominous bird of passage were crossing between
London and the stars, and once the cry of a woman sounded thin
and shrill from the direction of the river. For the rest there
was no more than the solemn, subdued hum that never ceased
now night or day.
"Yes: Felsenburgh," said Father Blackmore once more. "I
cannot get that man out of my head. And yet, what do I know of
him? What does anyone know of him?"
Percy licked his lips to answer, and drew a breath to still
the beating of his heart. He could not imagine why he felt
excited. After all, who was old Blackmore to frighten him? But
old Blackmore went on before he could speak.
"See how people are leaving the Church! The Wargraves, the
Hendersons, Sir James Bartlet, Lady Magnier, and then all the
priests. Now they're not all knaves--I wish they were; it would
be so much easier to talk of it. But Sir James Bartlet, last
month! Now, there's a man who has spent half his fortune on
the Church, and he doesn't resent it even now. He says that any
religion is better than none, but that, for himself, he just
can't believe any longer. Now what does all that mean? . . . I
tell you something is going to happen. God knows what! And I
can't get Felsenburgh out of my head. . . . Father Franklin----"
"Yes?"
"Have you noticed how few great men we've got? It's not like
fifty years ago, or even thirty. Then there were Mason,
Selborne, Sherbrook, and half-a-dozen others. There was
Brightman, too, as Archbishop: and now! Then the Communists,
too. Braithwaite is dead fifteen years. Certainly he was big
enough; but he was always speaking of the future, not of the
present; and tell me what big man they have had since then!
And now there's this new man, whom no one knows, who came
forward in America a few months ago, and whose name is in
everyone's mouth. Very well, then!"
Percy knitted his forehead.
"I am not sure that I understand," he said.
Father Blackmore knocked his pipe out before answering.
"Well, this," he said, standing up. "I can't help thinking
Felsenburgh is going to do something. I don't know what; it may
be for us or against us. But he is a Mason, remember that. . . .
Well, well: I daresay I'm an old fool. Good-night."
"One moment, father," said Percy slowly. "Do you mean----?
Good Lord! What do you mean?" He stopped, looking at the other.
The old priest stared back under his bushy eyebrows; it
seemed to Percy as if he, too, were afraid of something in spite
of his easy talk; but he made no sign.
* * * * * *
Percy stood perfectly still a moment when the door was shut.
Then he moved across to his prie-dieu.
OLD Mrs. Brand and Mabel were seated at a window of the new
Admiralty Offices in Trafalgar Square to see Oliver deliver his
speech on the fiftieth anniversary of the passing of the Poor
Laws Reform.
It was an inspiriting sight, this bright June morning, to see
the crowds gathering round Braithwaite's statue. That
politician, dead fifteen years before, was represented in his
famous attitude, with arms outstretched and down dropped, his
head up and one foot slightly advanced, and to-day was decked,
as was becoming more and more usual on such occasions, in his
Masonic insignia. It was he who had given immense impetus to
that secret movement by his declaration in the House that the
key of future progress and brotherhood of nations was in the
hands of the Order. It was through this alone that the false
unity of the Church with its fantastic spiritual fraternity
could be counteracted. St. Paul had been right, he declared, in
his desire to break down the partition-walls between nations,
and wrong only in his exaltation of Jesus Christ. Thus he had
preluded his speech on the Poor Law question, pointing to the
true charity that existed among Masons apart from religious
motive, and appealing to the famous benefactions on the
Continent; and in the enthusiasm of the Bill's success the
Order had received a great accession of members.
Old Mrs. Brand was in her best to-day, and looked out with
considerable excitement at the huge throng gathered to hear
her son speak. A platform was erected round the bronze statue
at such a height that the statesman appeared to be one of the
speakers, though at a slightly higher elevation, and this
platform was hung with roses, surmounted by a sounding-board,
and set with a chair and table.
The whole square round about was paved with heads and
resonant with sound, the murmurs of thousands of voices,
overpowered now and again by the crash of brass and thunder of
drums as the Benefit Societies and democratic Guilds, each
headed by a banner, deployed from north, south, east and west,
and converged towards the wide railed space about the platform
where room was reserved for them. The windows on every side
were packed with faces; tall stands were erected along the front
of the National Gallery and St. Martin's Church, garden-beds of
colour behind the mute, white statues that faced outwards round
the square, from Braithwaite in front, past the Victorians--
John Davidson, John Burns, and the rest--round to Hampden and
de Montfort towards the north. The old column was gone, with
its lions. Nelson had not been found advantageous to the
Entente Cordiale, nor the lions to the new art; and in their
place stretched a wide pavement broken by slopes of steps that
led up to the National Gallery. Overhead the roofs showed
crowded friezes of heads against the blue summer sky. Not less
than one hundred thousand persons, it was estimated in the
evening papers, were collected within sight and sound of the
platform by noon.
As the clocks began to tell the hour, two figures appeared
from behind the statue and came forward, and, in an instant, the
murmurs of talk rose into cheering.
Old Lord Pemberton came first, a grey-haired, upright man,
whose father had been active in denouncing the House of which
he was a member on the occasion of its fall over seventy years
ago, and his son had succeeded him worthily. This man was now a
member of the Government, and sat for Manchester (3); and it
was he who was to be chairman on this auspicious occasion.
Behind him came Oliver, bareheaded and spruce, and even at that
distance his mother and wife could see his brisk movement, his
sudden smile and nod as his name emerged from the storm of
sound that surged round the platform. Lord Pemberton came
forward, lifted his hand and made a signal; and in a moment the
thin cheering died under the sudden roll of drums beneath that
preluded the Masonic Hymn.
There was no doubt that these Londoners could sing. It was as
if a giant voice hummed the sonorous melody, rising to
enthusiasm till the music of massed bands followed it as a flag
follows a flag-stick. The hymn was one composed ten years
before, and all England was familiar with it. Old Mrs. Brand
lifted the printed paper mechanically to her eyes, and saw the
words that she knew so well:
"The Lord that dwells in earth and sea" . . .
She glanced down the verses, that from the Humanitarian
point of view had been composed with both skill and ardour.
They had a religious ring; the unintelligent Christian could
sing them without a qualm; yet their sense was plain enough--
the old human creed that man was all. Even Christ's words
themselves were quoted. The kingdom of God, it was said, lay
within the human heart, and the greatest of all graces was
Charity.
She glanced at Mabel, and saw that the girl was singing with
all her might, with her eyes fixed on her husband's dark figure
a hundred yards away, and her soul pouring through them. So the
mother, too, began to move her lips in chorus with that vast
volume of sound.
As the hymn died away, and before the cheering could begin
again, old Lord Pemberton was standing forward on the edge of
the platform, and his thin, metallic voice piped a sentence or
two across the tinkling splash of the fountains behind him.
Then he stepped back, and Oliver came forward.
* * * * * *
It was too far for the two to hear what was said, but Mabel
slipped a paper, smiling tremulously, into the old lady's hand,
and herself bent forward to listen.
Old Mrs. Brand looked at that, too, knowing that it was an
analysis of her son's speech, and aware that she would not be
able to hear his words.
There was an exordium first, congratulating all who were
present to do honour to the great man who presided from his
pedestal on the occasion of this great anniversary. Then there
came a retrospect, comparing the old state of England with the
present. Fifty years ago, the speaker said, poverty was still a
disgrace, now it was so no longer. It was in the causes that led
to poverty that the disgrace or the merit lay. Who would not
honour a man worn out in the service of his country, or
overcome at last by circumstances against which his efforts
could not prevail? . . . He enumerated the reforms passed fifty
years before on this very day, by which the nation once and for
all declared the glory of poverty and man's sympathy with the
unfortunate.
So he had told them he was to sing the praise of patient
poverty and its reward, and that, he supposed, together with a
few periods on the reform of the prison laws, would form the
first half of his speech.
The second part was to be a panegyric of Braithwaite,
treating him as the Precursor of a movement that even now had
begun.
Old Mrs. Brand leaned back in her seat, and looked about her.
The window where they sat had been reserved for them; two
arm-chairs filled the space, but immediately behind there were
others, standing very silent now, craning forward, watching, too,
with parted lips: a couple of women with an old man directly
behind, and other faces visible again behind them. Their
obvious absorption made the old lady a little ashamed of her
distraction, and she turned resolutely once more to the square.
Ah! he was working up now to his panegyric The tiny dark
figure was back, a yard nearer the statue, and as she looked, his
hand went up and he wheeled, pointing, as a murmur of applause
drowned for an instant the minute, resonant voice. Then again
he was forward, half crouching--for he was a born actor--and a
storm of laughter rippled round the throng of heads. She heard
an indrawn hiss behind her chair, and the next instant an
exclamation from Mabel. . . . What was that?
There was a sharp crack, and the tiny gesticulating figure
staggered back a step. The old man at the table was up in a
moment, and simultaneously a violent commotion bubbled and
heaved like water about a rock at a point in the crowd
immediately outside the railed space where the bands were
massed, and directly opposite the front of the platform.
Mrs. Brand, bewildered and dazed, found herself standing up,
clutching the window rail, while the girl gripped her, crying
out something she could not understand. A great roaring filled
the square, the heads tossed this way and that, like corn under a
squall of wind. Then Oliver was forward again, pointing and
crying out, for she could see his gestures; and she sank back
quickly, the blood racing through her old veins, and her heart
hammering at the base of her throat.
"My dear, my dear, what is it?" she sobbed.
But Mabel was up, too, staring out at her husband; and a quick
babble of talk and exclamations from behind made itself
audible in spite of the roaring tumult of the square.
(II)
Oliver told them the explanation of the whole affair that
evening at home, leaning back in his chair, with one arm
bandaged and in a sling.
They had not been able to get near him at the time; the
excitement in the square had been too fierce; but a messenger
had come to his wife with the news that her husband was only
slightly wounded, and was in the hands of the doctors.
"He was a Catholic," explained the drawn-faced Oliver. "He
must have come ready, for his repeater was found loaded. Well,
there was no chance for a priest this time."
Mabel nodded slowly: she had read of the man's fate on the
placards.
"He was killed--trampled and strangled instantly," said
Oliver. "I did what I could: you saw me. But--well, I daresay it
was more merciful."
"But you did what you could, my dear?" said the old lady,
anxiously, from her corner.
"I called out to them, mother, but they wouldn't hear me."
Mabel leant forward--
"Oliver, I know this sounds stupid of me; but--but I wish
they had not killed him."
Oliver smiled at her. He knew this tender trait in her.
"It would have been more perfect if they had not," she said.
Then she broke off and sat back.
"Why did he shoot just then?" she asked.
Oliver turned his eyes for an instant towards his mother, but
she was knitting tranquilly.
Then he answered with a curious deliberateness.
"I said that Braithwaite had done more for the world by one
speech than Jesus and all His saints put together." He was aware
that the knitting-needles stopped for a second; then they went
on again as before.
"But he must have meant to do it anyhow," continued Oliver.
"How do they know he was a Catholic?" asked the girl again.
"There was a rosary on him; and then he just had time to
call on his God."
"And nothing more is known?"
"Nothing more. He was well dressed, though."
Oliver leaned back a little wearily and closed his eyes; his
arm still throbbed intolerably. But he was very happy at heart.
It was true that he had been wounded by a fanatic, but he was
not sorry to bear pain in such a cause, and it was obvious that
the sympathy of England was with him. Mr. Phillips even now
was busy in the next room, answering the telegrams that poured
in every moment. Caldecott, the Prime Minister, Maxwell,
Snowford and a dozen others had wired instantly their
congratulations, and from every part of England streamed in
message after message. It was an immense stroke for the
Communists; their spokesman had been assaulted during the
discharge of his duty, speaking in defence of his principles; it
was an incalculable gain for them, and loss for the
Individualists, that confessors were not all on one side after
all. The huge electric placards over London had winked out the
facts in Esperanto as Oliver stepped into the train at twilight.
"Oliver Brand wounded. . . . Catholic assailant. . . .
Indignation of the country. . . . Well-deserved fate of
assassin."
He was pleased, too, that he honestly had done his best to
save the man. Even in that moment of sudden and acute pain he
had cried out for a fair trial; but he had been too late. He had
seen the starting eyes roll up in the crimson face, and the
horrid grin come and go as the hands had clutched and torn at
his throat. Then the face had vanished and a heavy trampling
began where it had disappeared. Oh! there was some passion and
loyalty left in England!
His mother got up presently and went out, still without a
word; and Mabel turned to him, laying a hand on his knee.
"Are you too tired to talk, my dear?"
He opened his eyes.
"Of course not, my darling. What is it?"
"What do you think will be the effect?"
He raised himself a little, looking out as usual through the
darkening windows on to that astonishing view. Everywhere now
lights were glowing, a sea of mellow moons just above the
houses, and above the mysterious heavy blue of a summer
evening.
"The effect?" he said. "It can be nothing but good. It was
time that something happened. My dear, I feel very downcast
sometimes, as you know. Well, I do not think I shall be again. I
have been afraid sometimes that we were losing all our spirit,
and that the old Tories were partly right when they prophesied
what Communism would do. But after this----"
"Well?"
"Well; we have shown that we can shed our blood too. It is in
the nick of time, too, just at the crisis. I don't want to
exaggerate; it is only a scratch--but it was so deliberate, and--
and so dramatic. The poor devil could not have chosen a worse
moment. People won't forget it."
Mabel's eyes shone with pleasure.
"You poor dear!" she said. "Are you in pain?"
"Not much. Besides, Christ! what do I care? If only this
infernal Eastern affair would end!"
He knew he was feverish and irritable, and made a great
effort to drive it down.
"Oh, my dear!" he went on, flushed a little. "If they would
not be such heavy fools: they don't understand; they don't
understand."
"Yes, Oliver?"
"They don't understand what a glorious thing it all is:
Humanity, Life, Truth at last, and the death of Folly! But
haven't I told them a hundred times?"
She looked at him with kindling eyes. She loved to see him
like this, his confident, flushed face, the enthusiasm in his
blue eyes; and the knowledge of his pain pricked her feeling
with passion. She bent forward and kissed him suddenly.
"My dear, I am so proud of you. Oh, Oliver!"
He said nothing; but she could see what she loved to see,
that response to her own heart; and so they sat in silence
while the sky darkened yet more, and the click of the writer in
the next room told them that the world was alive and that they
had a share in its affairs.
Oliver stirred presently.
"Did you notice anything just now, sweetheart--when I said
that about Jesus Christ?"
"She stopped knitting for a moment," said the girl.
He nodded.
"You saw that too, then. . . . Mabel, do you think she is
falling back?"
"Oh! she is getting old," said the girl lightly. "Of course
she looks back a little."
"But you don't think--it would be too awful!"
She shook her head.
"No, no, my dear; you're excited and tired. It's just a little
sentiment. . . . Oliver, I don't think I would say that kind of
thing before her."
"But she hears it everywhere now."
"No, she doesn't. Remember she hardly ever goes out. Besides,
she hates it. After all, she was brought up a Catholic."
Oliver nodded, and lay back again, looking dreamily out.
"Isn't it astonishing the way in which suggestion lasts? She
can't get it out of her head, even after fifty years. Well, watch
her, won't you? . . . By the way . . ."
"Yes?"
"There's a little more news from the East. They say
Felsenburgh's running the whole thing now. The Empire is
sending him everywhere--Tobolsk, Benares, Yakutsk--everywhere;
and he's been to Australia."
Mabel sat up briskly.
"Isn't that very hopeful?"
"I suppose so. There's no doubt that the Sufis are winning;
but for how long is another question. Besides, the troops don't
disperse."
"And Europe?"
"Europe is arming as fast as possible. I hear we are to meet
the Powers next week at Paris. I must go."
"Your arm, my dear?"
"My arm must get well. It will have to go with me, anyhow."
"Tell me some more."
"There is no more. But it is just as certain as it can be that
this is the crisis. If the East can be persuaded to hold its hand
now, it will never be likely to raise it again. It will mean free
trade all over the world, I suppose, and all that kind of thing.
But if not----"
"Well?"
"If not, there will be a catastrophe such as never has been
even imagined. The whole human race will be at war, and either
East or West will be simply wiped out. These new Benninschein
explosives will make certain of that."
"But is it absolutely certain that the East has got them?"
"Absolutely. Benninschein sold them simultaneously to East
and West; then he died, luckily for him."
Mabel had heard this kind of talk before, but her imagination
simply refused to grasp it. A duel of East and West under these
new conditions was an unthinkable thing. There had been no
European war within living memory, and the Eastern wars of the
last century had been under the old conditions. Now, if tales
were true, entire towns would be destroyed with a single shell.
The new conditions were unimaginable. Military experts
prophesied extravagantly, contradicting one another on vital
points; the whole procedure of war was a matter of theory;
there were no precedents with which to compare it. It was as if
archers disputed as to the results of cordite. Only one thing
was certain--that the East had every modern engine, and, as
regards male population, half as much again as the rest of the
world put together; and the conclusion to be drawn from these
premisses was not reassuring to England.
But imagination simply refused to speak. The daily papers
had a short, careful leading article every day, founded upon the
scraps of news that stole out from the conferences on the
other side of the world; Felsenburgh's name appeared more
frequently than ever: otherwise there seemed to be a kind of
hush. Nothing suffered very much; trade went on; European
stocks were not appreciably lower than usual; men still built
houses, married wives, begat sons and daughters, did their
business and went to the theatre, for the mere reason that
there was no good in anything else. They could neither save nor
precipitate the situation; it was on too large a scale.
Occasionally people went mad--people who had succeeded in
goading their imagination to a height whence a glimpse of
reality could be obtained; and there was a diffused atmosphere
of tenseness. But that was all. Not many speeches were made on
the subject; it had been found inadvisable. After all, there was
nothing to do but to wait.
(III)
Mabel remembered her husband's advice to watch, and for a
few days did her best. But there was nothing that alarmed her.
The old lady was a little quiet, perhaps, but went about her
minute affairs as usual. She asked the girl to read to her
sometimes, and listened unblenching to whatever was offered
her; she attended in the kitchen daily, organised varieties of
food, and appeared interested in all that concerned her son. She
packed his bag with her own hands, set out his furs for the
swift flight to Paris, and waved to him from the window as he
went down the little path towards the junction. He would be
gone three days, he said.
It was on the evening of the second day that she fell ill; and
Mabel, running upstairs, in alarm at the message of the servant,
found her rather flushed and agitated in her chair.
"It is nothing, my dear," said the old lady tremulously; and
she added the description of a symptom or two.
Mabel got her to bed, sent for the doctor, and sat down to
wait.
She was sincerely fond of the old lady, and had always found
her presence in the house a quiet sort of delight. The effect of
her upon the mind was as that of an easy-chair upon the body.
The old lady was so tranquil and human, so absorbed in small
external matters, so reminiscent now and then of the days of
her youth, so utterly without resentment or peevishness. It
seemed curiously pathetic to the girl to watch that quiet old
spirit approach its extinction, or rather, as Mabel believed, its
loss of personality in the reabsorption into the Spirit of Life
which informed the world. She found less difficulty in
contemplating the end of a vigorous soul, for in that case she
imagined a kind of energetic rush of force back into the origin
of things; but, in this peaceful old lady there was so little
energy; her whole point, so to speak, lay in the delicate little
fabric of personality, built out of fragile things into an entity
far more significant than the sum of its component parts: the
death of a flower, reflected Mabel, is sadder than the death of a
lion; the breaking of a piece of china more irreparable than
the ruin of a palace.
"It is syncope," said the doctor when he came in. "She may
die at any time; she may live ten years."
"There is no need to telegraph for Mr. Brand?"
He made a little deprecating movement with his hands.
"It is not certain that she will die--it is not imminent?"
she asked.
"No, no; she may live ten years, I said."
He added a word or two of advice as to the use of the oxygen
injector, and went away.
* * * * * *
The old lady was lying quietly in bed, when the girl went up,
and put out a wrinkled hand.
"Well, my dear?" she asked.
"It is just a little weakness, mother. You must lie quiet and
do nothing. Shall I read to you?"
"No, my dear; I will think a little."
It was no part of Mabel's idea to duty to tell her that she
was in danger, for there was no past to set straight, no judge
to be confronted. Death was an ending, not a beginning. It was a
peaceful Gospel; at least, it became peaceful as soon as the end
had come.
So the girl went downstairs once more, with a quiet little
ache at her heart that refused to be still.
What a strange and beautiful thing death was, she told
herself--this resolution of a chord that had hung suspended for
thirty, fifty or seventy years--back again into the stillness of
the huge Instrument that was all in all to itself. Those same
notes would be struck again, were being struck again even now
all over the world, though with an infinite delicacy of
difference in the touch; but that particular emotion was gone:
it was foolish to think that it was sounding eternally
elsewhere, for there was no elsewhere. She, too, herself would
cease one day; let her see to it that the tone was pure and
lovely.
* * * * * *
Mr. Phillips arrived the next morning as usual, just as Mabel
had left the old lady's room, and asked news of her.
"She is a little better, I think," said Mabel. "She must be
very quiet all day."
The secretary bowed and turned aside into Oliver's room,
where a heap of letters lay to be answered.
A couple of hours later, as Mabel went upstairs once more,
she met Mr. Phillips coming down. He looked a little flushed
under his sallow skin.
"Mrs. Brand sent for me," he said. "She wished to know
whether Mr. Oliver would be back to-night."
"He will, will he not? You have not heard?"
"Mr. Brand said he would be here for a late dinner. He will
reach London at nineteen."
"And is there any other news?"
He compressed his lips.
"There are rumours," he said. "Mr. Brand wired to me an hour
ago."
He seemed moved at something, and Mabel looked at him in
astonishment.
"It is not Eastern news?" she asked.
His eyebrows wrinkled a little.
"You must forgive me, Mrs. Brand," he said. "I am not at
liberty to say anything."
She was not offended, for she trusted her husband too well;
but she went on into the sick-room with her heart beating.
The old lady, too, seemed excited. She lay in bed with a clear
flush in her white cheeks, and hardly smiled at all to the
girl's greeting.
"Well, you have seen Mr. Phillips, then?" said Mabel.
Old Mrs. Brand looked at her sharply an instant, but said
nothing.
"Don't excite yourself, mother. Oliver will be back to-
night."
The old lady drew a long breath.
"Don't trouble about me, my dear," she said. "I shall do very
well now. He will be back to dinner, will he not?"
"If the volor is not late. Now, mother, are you ready for
breakfast?"
* * * * * *
Mabel passed an afternoon of considerable agitation. It was
certain that something had happened. The secretary, who
breakfasted with her in the parlour looking on to the garden,
had appeared strangely excited. He had told her that he would
be away the rest of the day: Mr. Oliver had given him his
instructions. He had refrained from all discussion of the
Eastern question, and he had given her no news of the Paris
Convention; he only repeated that Mr. Oliver would be back that
night. Then he had gone off in a hurry half-an-hour later.
The old lady seemed asleep when the girl went up afterwards,
and Mabel did hot like to disturb her. Neither did she like to
leave the house; so she walked by herself in the garden,
thinking and hoping and fearing, till the long shadow lay across
the path, and the tumbled platform of roofs was bathed in a
dusty green haze from the west.
As she came in she took up the evening paper, but there was
no news there except to the effect that the Convention would
close that afternoon.
* * * * * *
Twenty o'clock came, but there was no sign of Oliver. The
Paris volor should have arrived an hour before, but Mabel,
staring out into the darkening heavens, had seen the stars come
out like jewels one by one, but no slender winged fish pass
overhead. Of course she might have missed it; there was no
depending on its exact course; but she had seen it a hundred
times before, and wondered unreasonably why she had not seen it
now. But she would not sit down to dinner, and paced up and
down in her white dress, turning again and again to the window,
listening to the soft rush of the trains, the faint hoots from
the track, and the musical chords from the junction a mile
away. The lights were up by now, and the vast sweep of the towns
looked like fairyland between the earthly light and the
heavenly darkness. Why did not Oliver come, or at least let her
know why he did not?
Once she went upstairs, miserably anxious herself, to
reassure the old lady, and found her again very drowsy.
"He is not come," she said. "I daresay he may be kept in
Paris."
The old face on the pillow nodded and murmured, and Mabel
went down again. It was now an hour after dinner-time.
Oh! there were a hundred things that might have kept him. He
had often been later than this: he might have missed the volor
he meant to catch; the Convention might have been prolonged;
he might be exhausted, and think it better to sleep in Paris
after all, and have forgotten to wire. He might even have wired,
to Mr. Phillips, and the secretary have forgotten to pass on the
message.
She went at last, hopelessly, to the telephone, and looked at
it. There it was, that round silent mouth, that little row of
labelled buttons. She half decided to touch them one by one,
and enquire whether anything had been heard of her husband:
there was his club, his office in Whitehall, Mr. Phillips's
house, Parliament-house, and the rest. But she hesitated,
telling herself to be patient. Oliver hated interference, and he
would surely soon remember and relieve her anxiety.
Then, even as she turned away, the bell rang sharply, and a
white label flashed into sight.--WHITEHALL.
She pressed the corresponding button, and, her hand shaking
so much that she could scarcely hold the receiver to her ear,
she listened.
"Who is there?"
Her heart leapt at the sound of her husband's voice, tiny and
minute across the miles of wire.
"I--Mabel," she said. "Alone here."
"Oh! Mabel. Very well. I am back: all is well. Now listen.
Can you hear?"
"Yes, yes."
"The best has happened. It is all over in the East.
Felsenburgh has done it. Now listen. I cannot come home to-
night. It will be announced in Paul's House in two hours from
now. We are communicating with the Press. Come up here to me
at once. You must be present. . . . Can you hear?"
"Oh, yes."
"Come then at once. It will be the greatest thing in history.
Tell no one. Come before the rush begins. In half-an-hour the
way will be stopped."
"Oliver."
"Yes? Quick."
"Mother is ill. Shall I leave her?"
"How ill?"
"Oh, no immediate danger. The doctor has seen her."
There was silence for a moment.
"Yes: come then. We will go back to-night anyhow, then. Tell
her we shall be late."
"Very well."
". . . Yes, you must come. Felsenburgh will be there."
There was nothing exceptional about him; and Percy, as he
came downstairs in his walking-dress and looked at him in the
light from the tall parlour-window, came to no conclusion at
all as to his business and person, except that he was not a
Catholic.
"You wished to see me," said the priest, indicating a chair.
"I fear I must not stop long."
"I shall not keep you long," said the stranger eagerly. "My
business is done in five minutes."
Percy waited with his eyes cast down.
"A--a certain person has sent me to you. She was a Catholic
once; she wishes to return to the Church."
Percy made a little movement with his head. It was a
message he did not very often receive in these days.
"You will come, sir, will you not? You will promise me?"
The man seemed greatly agitated; his sallow face showed a
little shining with sweat, and his eyes were piteous.
"Of course I will come," said Percy smiling.
"Yes, sir; but you do not know who she is. It--it would make
a great stir, sir, if it was known. It must not be known, sir;
you will promise me that, too?"
"I must not make any promise of that kind," said the priest
gently. "I do not know the circumstances yet."
The stranger licked his lips nervously.
"Well, sir," he said hastily. "You will say nothing till you
have seen her? You can promise me that."
"Oh! certainly," said the priest.
"Well, sir, you had better not know my name. It--it may make
it easier for you and for me. And--and, if you please, sir, the
lady is ill; you must come to-day, if you please, but not until
the evening. Will twenty-two o'clock be convenient, sir?"
"Where is it?" asked Percy abruptly.
"It--it is near Croydon junction. I will write down the
address presently. And you will not come until twenty-two
o'clock, sir?"
"Why not now?"
"Because the--the others may be there. They will be away
then; I know that."
This was rather suspicious, Percy thought: discreditable
plots had been known before. But he could not refuse outright.
"Why does she not send for her parish-priest?" he asked.
"She--she does not know who he is, sir; she saw you once in
the Cathedral, sir, and asked you for your name. Do you
remember, sir?--an old lady?"
Percy did dimly remember something of the kind a month or
two before; but he could not be certain, and said so.
"Well, sir, you will come, will you not?"
"I must communicate with Father Dolan," said the priest. "If
he gives me permission----"
"If you please, sir, Father--Father Dolan must not know her
name. You will not tell him?"
"I do not know it myself yet," said the priest, smiling.
The stranger sat back abruptly at that, and his face worked.
"Well, sir, let me tell you this first. This old lady's son is
my employer, and a very prominent Communist. She lives with
him and his wife. The other two will be away to-night. That is
why I am asking you all this. And now, you will come, sir?"
Percy looked at him steadily for a moment or two. Certainly,
if this was a conspiracy, the conspirators were feeble folk.
Then he answered:
"I will come, sir; I promise. Now the name."
The stranger again licked his lips nervously, and glanced
timidly from side to side. Then he seemed to gather his
resolution; he leaned forward and whispered sharply.
"The old lady's name is Brand, sir--the mother of Mr. Oliver
Brand."
For a moment Percy was bewildered. It was too extraordinary
to be true. He knew Mr. Oliver Brand's name only too well; it
was he who, by God's permission, was doing more in England at
this moment against the Catholic cause than any other man
alive; and it was he whom the Trafalgar Square incident had
raised into such eminent popularity. And now, here was his
mother----
He turned fiercely upon the man.
"I do not know what you are, sir--whether you believe in God
or not; but will you swear to me on your religion and your
honour that all this is true?"
The timid eyes met his, and wavered; but it was the wavering
of weakness, not of treachery.
"I--I swear it, sir; by God Almighty."
"Are you a Catholic?"
The man shook his head.
"But I believe in God," he said. "At least, I think so."
Percy leaned back, trying to realise exactly what it all
meant. There was no triumph in his mind--that kind of emotion
was not his weakness; there was fear of a kind, excitement,
bewilderment, and under all a satisfaction that God's grace was
so sovereign. If it could reach this woman, who could be too far
removed for it to take effect? Presently he noticed the other
looking at him anxiously.
"You are afraid, sir? You are not going back from your
promise?"
That dispersed the cloud a little, and Percy smiled.
"Oh! no," he said. "I will be there at twenty-two o'clock.
. . . Is death imminent?"
"No sir; it is syncope. She is recovered a little this
morning."
The priest passed his hand over his eyes and stood up.
"Well, I will be there," he said. "Shall you be there, sir?"
The other shook his head, standing up too.
"I must be with Mr. Brand, sir; there is to be a meeting to-
night; but I must not speak of that. . . . No, sir; ask for Mrs.
Brand, and say that she is expecting you. They will take you
upstairs at once."
"I must not say I am a priest, I suppose?"
"No, sir; if you please."
He drew out a pocket-book, scribbled in it a moment, tore
out the sheet, and handed it to the priest.
"The address, sir. Will you kindly destroy that when you have
copied it? I--I do not wish to lose my place, sir, if it can be
helped."
Percy stood twisting the paper in his fingers a moment.
"Why are you not a Catholic yourself?" he asked.
The man shook his head mutely. Then he took up his hat, and
went towards the door.
* * * * * *
Percy passed a very emotional afternoon.
For the last month or two little had happened to encourage
him. He had been obliged to report half-a-dozen more
significant secessions, and hardly a conversion of any kind.
There was no doubt at all that the tide was setting steadily
against the Church. The mad act in Trafalgar Square, too, had
done incalculable harm last week: men were saying more than
ever, and the papers storming, that the Church's reliance on the
supernatural was belied by every one of her public acts.
"Scratch a Catholic and find an assassin" had been the text of a
leading article in the New People, and Percy himself was
dismayed at the folly of the attempt. It was true that the
Archbishop had formally repudiated both the act and the motive
from the Cathedral pulpit, but that too had only served as an
opportunity hastily taken up by the principal papers, to recall
the continual policy of the Church to avail herself of violence
while she repudiated the violent. The horrible death of the man
had in no way appeased popular indignation; there were not even
wanting suggestions that the man had been seen coming out of
Archbishop's House an hour before the attempt at assassination
had taken place.
And now here, with dramatic swiftness, had come a message
that the hero's own mother desired reconciliation with the
Church that had attempted to murder her son.
* * * * * *
Again and again that afternoon, as Percy sped northwards on
his visit to a priest in Worcester, and southwards once more as
the lights began to shine towards evening, he wondered whether
this were not a plot after all--some kind of retaliation, an
attempt to trap him. Yet he had promised to say nothing, and
to go.
He finished his daily letter after dinner as usual, with a
curious sense of fatality; addressed and stamped it. Then he
went downstairs, in his walking-dress, to Father Blackmore's
room.
"Will you hear my confession, father?" he said abruptly.
(II)
Victoria Station, still named after the great nineteenth-
century Queen, was neither more nor less busy than usual as he
came into it half-an-hour later. The vast platform, sunk now
nearly two hundred feet below the ground level, showed the
double crowd of passengers entering and leaving town. Those on
the extreme left, towards whom Percy began to descend in the
open glazed lift, were by far the most numerous, and the stream
at the lift-entrance made it necessary for him to move slowly.
He arrived at last, walking in the soft light on the noiseless
ribbed rubber, and stood by the door of the long car that ran
straight through to the Junction. It was the last of a series of
a dozen or more, each of which slid off minute by minute. Then,
still watching the endless movement of the lifts ascending and
descending between the entrances of the upper end of the
station, he stepped in and sat down.
* * * * * *
He felt quiet now that he had actually started. He had made
his confession, just in order to make certain of his own soul,
though scarcely expecting any definite danger, and sat now, his
grey suit and straw hat in no way distinguishing him as a priest
(for a general leave was given by the authorities to dress so for
any adequate reason). Since the case was not imminent, he had
not brought stocks or pyx--Father Dolan had wired to him that
he might fetch them if he wished from St. Joseph's, near the
Junction. He had only the violet thread in his pocket, such as
was customary for sick calls.
He was sliding along peaceably enough, fixing his eyes on the
empty seat opposite, and trying to preserve complete
collectedness, when the car abruptly stopped. He looked out,
astonished, and saw by the white enamelled walks twenty feet
from the window that they were already in the tunnel. The
stoppage might arise from many causes, and he was not greatly
excited, nor did it seem that others in the carriage took it
very seriously; he could hear, after a moment's silence, the
talking recommence beyond the partition.
Then there came, echoed by the walls, the sound of shouting
from far away, mingled with hoots and chords; it grew louder.
The talking in the carriage stopped. He heard a window thrown
up, and the next instant a car tore past, going back to the
station although on the down line. This must be looked into,
thought Percy: something certainly was happening; so he got up
and went across the empty compartment to the further window.
Again came the crying of voices, again the signals, and once
more a car whirled past, followed almost immediately by
another. There was a jerk--a smooth movement. Percy staggered
and fell into a seat, as the carriage in which he was seated
itself began to move backwards.
There was a clamour now in the next compartment, and Percy
made his way there through the door, only to find half-a-dozen
men with their heads thrust from the windows, who paid
absolutely no attention to his enquiries. So he stood there,
aware that they knew no more than himself, waiting for an
explanation from someone. It was disgraceful, he told himself,
that any misadventure should so disorganise the line.
Twice the car stopped; each time it moved on again after a
hoot or two, and at last drew up at the platform whence it had
started, although a hundred yards further out.
Ah! there was no doubt that something had happened! The
instant he opened the door a great roar met his ears, and as he
sprang on to the platform and looked up at the end of the
station, he began to understand.
* * * * * *
From right to left of the huge interior, across the
platforms, swelling every instant, surged an enormous swaying,
roaring crowd. The flight of steps, twenty yards broad, used
only in cases of emergency, resembled a gigantic black cataract
nearly two hundred feet in height. Each car as it drew up
discharged more and more men and women, who ran like ants
towards the assembly of their fellows. The noise was
indescribable, the shouting of men, the screaming of women, the
clang and hoot of the huge machines, and three or four times
the brazen cry of a trumpet, as an emergency door was flung
open overhead, and a small swirl of crowd poured through it
towards the streets beyond. But after one look Percy looked no
more at the people; for there, high up beneath the clock, on
the Government signal board, flared out monstrous letters of
fire, telling in Esperanto and English, the message for which
England had grown sick. He read it a dozen times before he
moved, staring, as at a supernatural sight which might denote
the triumph of either heaven or hell.
"EASTERN CONVENTION DISPERSED.
PEACE, NOT WAR.
UNIVERSAL BROTHERHOOD ESTABLISHED.
FELSENBURGH IN LONDON TO-NIGHT."
(III)
It was not until nearly two hours later that Percy was
standing at the house beyond the junction.
He had argued, expostulated, threatened, but the officials
were like men possessed. Half of them had disappeared in the
rush to the City, for it had leaked out, in spite of the
Government's precautions, that Paul's House, known once as St.
Paul's Cathedral, was to be the scene of Felsenburgh's
reception. The others seemed demented; one man on the
platform had dropped dead from nervous exhaustion, but no one
appeared to care; and the body lay huddled beneath a seat. Again
and again Percy had been swept away by a rush, as he struggled
from platform to platform in his search for a car that would
take him to Croydon. It seemed that there was none to be had,
and the useless carriages collected like drift-wood between the
platforms, as others whirled up from the country bringing
loads of frantic, delirious men, who vanished like smoke from
the white rubber-boards. The platforms were continually
crowded, and as continually emptied, and it was not until half-
an-hour before midnight that the block began to move outwards
again.
Well, he was here at last, dishevelled, hatless and exhausted,
looking up at the dark windows.
He scarcely knew what he thought of the whole matter. War,
of course, was terrible. And such a war as this would have been
too terrible for the imagination to visualise; but to the
priest's mind there were other things even worse. What of
universal peace--peace, that is to say, established by others
than Christ's method? Or was God behind even this? The
questions were hopeless.
Felsenburgh--it was he then who had done this thing--this
thing undoubtedly greater than any secular event hitherto known
in civilisation. What manner of man was he? What was his
character: his motive, his method? How would he use his
success? . . . So the points flew before him like a stream of
sparks, each, it might be, harmless; each, equally, capable of
setting a world on fire. Meanwhile here was an old woman who
desired to be reconciled with God before she died. . . .
* * * * * *
He touched the button again, three or four times, and waited.
Then a light sprang out overhead, and he knew that he was heard.
"I was sent for," he explained to the bewildered maid. "I
should have been here at twenty-two: I was prevented by the
rush."
She babbled out a question at him.
"Yes, it is true, I believe," he said. "It is peace, not war.
Kindly take me upstairs."
He went through the hall with a curious sense of guilt. This
was Brand's house then--that vivid orator, so bitterly eloquent
against God; and here was he, a priest, slinking in under cover
of night. Well, well, it was not of his appointment.
At the door of an upstairs room the maid turned to him.
"A doctor, sir?" she said.
"That is my affair," said Percy briefly, and opened the door.
* * * * * *
A little wailing cry broke from the corner, before he had
time to close the door again.
"Oh! thank God! I thought He had forgotten me. You are a
priest, father?"
"I am a priest. Do you not remember seeing me in the
Cathedral?"
"Yes, yes, sir; I saw you praying, father. Oh! thank God, thank
God!"
Percy stood looking down at her a moment, seeing her flushed
old face in the nightcap, her bright sunken eyes and her
tremulous hands. Yes; this was genuine enough.
"Now, my child," he said, "tell me."
"My confession, father."
Percy drew out the purple thread, slipped it over his
shoulders, and sat down by the bed.
* * * * * *
But she would not let him go for a while after that.
"Tell me, father. When will you bring me Holy Communion?"
He hesitated.
"I understand that Mr. Brand and his wife know nothing of all
this?"
"No, father."
"Tell me, are you very ill?"
"I don't know, father. They will not tell me. I thought I was
gone last night."
"When would you wish me to bring you Holy Communion? I
will do as you say."
"Shall I send to you in a day or two? Father, ought I to tell
him?"
"You are not obliged."
"I will if I ought."
"Well, think about it, and let me know. . . . You have heard
what has happened?"
She nodded, but almost uninterestedly; and Percy was
conscious of a tiny prick of compunction at his own heart.
After all, the reconciling of a soul to God was a greater thing
than the reconciling of East to West.
"It may make a difference to Mr. Brand," he said. "He will be
a great man, now, you know."
She still looked at him in silence, smiling a little. Percy
was astonished at the youthfulness of that old face. Then her
face changed.
"Father, I must not keep you; but tell me this--Who is this
man?"
"Felsenburgh?"
"Yes."
"No one knows. We shall know more to-morrow. He is in town
to-night."
She looked so strange that Percy for an instant thought it
was a seizure. Her face seemed to fall away in a kind of
emotion, half cunning, half fear.
"Well, my child?"
"Father, I am a little afraid when I think of that man. He
cannot harm me, can he? I am safe now? I am a Catholic----?"
"My child, of course you are safe. What is the matter? How
can this man injure you?"
But the look of terror was still there, and Percy came a step
nearer.
"You must not give way to fancies," he said. "Just commit
yourself to our Blessed Lord. This man can do you no harm."
He was speaking now as to a child; but it was of no use. Her
old mouth was still sucked in, and her eyes wandered past him
into the gloom of the room behind.
"My child, tell me what is the matter. What do you know of
Felsenburgh? You have been dreaming."
She nodded suddenly and energetically, and Percy for the
first time felt his heart give a little leap of apprehension.
Was this old woman out of her mind, then? Or why was it that
that name seemed to him sinister? Then he remembered that
Father Blackmore had once talked like this. He made an effort,
and sat down once more.
"Now tell me plainly," he said. "You have been dreaming.
What have you dreamt?"
She raised herself a little in bed, again glancing round the
room; then she put out her old ringed hand for one of his, and
he gave it, wondering.
"The door is shut, father? There is no one listening?"
"No, no, my child. Why are you trembling? You must not be
superstitious."
"Father, I will tell you. Dreams are nonsense, are they not?
Well, at least, this is what I dreamt.
"I was somewhere in a great house; I do not know where it
was. It was a house I have never seen. It was one of the old
houses, and it was very dark. I was a child, I thought, and I was
. . . I was afraid of something. The passages were all dark, and
I went crying in the dark, looking for a light, and there was
none. Then I heard a voice talking, a great way off. Father----"
Her hand gripped his more tightly, and again her eyes went
round the room.
With great difficulty Percy repressed a sigh. Yet he dared not
leave her just now. The house was very still; only from outside
now and again sounded the clang of the cars, as they sped
countrywards again from the congested town, and once the sound
of great shouting. He wondered what time it was.
"Had you better tell me now?" he asked, still talking with a
patient simplicity. "What time will they be back?"
"Not yet," she whispered. "Mabel said not till two o'clock.
What time is it now, father?"
He pulled out his watch with his disengaged hand.
"It is not yet one," he said.
"Very well, listen, father. . . . I was in this house; and I
heard that talking; and I ran along the passages, till I saw
light below a door; and then I stopped. . . . Nearer, father."
Percy was a little awed in spite of himself. Her voice had
suddenly dropped to a whisper, and her old eyes seemed to hold
him strangely.
"I stopped, father; I dared not go in. I could hear the
talking, and I could see the light; and I dared not go in.
Father, it was Felsenburgh in that room."
From beneath came the sudden snap of a door then the sound
of footsteps. Percy turned his head abruptly, and at the same
moment heard a swift indrawn breath from the old woman.
"Hush!" he said. "Who is that?"
Two voices were talking in the hall below now, and at the
sound the old woman relaxed her hold.
"I--I thought it to be him," she murmured.
Percy stood up; he could see that she did not understand the
situation.
"Yes, my child," he said quietly, "but who is it?"
"My son and his wife," she said; then her face changed once
more. "Why--why, father----"
Her voice died in her throat, as a step vibrated outside. For
a moment there was complete silence; then a whisper, plainly
audible, in a girl's voice.
"Why, her light is burning. Come in, Oliver, but softly."
THERE was an exclamation, then silence, as a tall, beautiful
girl with flushed face and shining grey eyes came forward and
stopped, followed by a man whom Percy knew at once from his
pictures. A little whimpering sounded from the bed, and the
priest lifted his hand instinctively to silence it.
"Why," said Mabel; and then stared at the man with the young
face and the white hair.
Oliver opened his lips and closed them again. He, too, had a
strange excitement in his face. Then he spoke.
"Who is this?" he said deliberately.
"Oliver," cried the girl, turning to him abruptly, "this is
the priest I saw----"
"A priest!" said the other, and came forward a step. "Why, I
thought----"
Percy drew a breath to steady that maddening vibration in
his throat.
"Yes, I am a priest," he said.
Again the whimpering broke out from the bed; and Percy, half
turning again to silence it, saw the girl mechanically loosen
the clasp of the thin dust cloak over her white dress.
"You sent for him, mother?" snapped the man, with a tremble
in his voice, and with a sudden jerk forward of his whole body.
But the girl put out her hand.
"Quietly, my dear," she said. "Now, sir----"
"Yes, I am a priest," said Percy again, strung up now to a
desperate resistance of will, hardly knowing what he said.
"And you come to my house!" exclaimed the man. He came a
step nearer, and half recoiled. "You swear you are a priest?" he
said. "You have been here all this evening?"
"Since midnight."
"And you are not----" he stopped again.
Mabel stepped straight between them.
"Oliver," she said, still with that air of suppressed
excitement, "we must not have a scene here. The poor dear is
too ill. Will you come downstairs, sir?"
Percy took a step towards the door, and Oliver moved
slightly aside. Then the priest stopped, turned and lifted his
hand.
"God bless you!" he said simply, to the muttering figure in
the bed. Then he went out, and waited outside the door.
He could hear a low talking within; then a compassionate
murmur from the girl's voice; then Oliver was beside him,
trembling all over, as white as ashes, and made a silent gesture
as he went past him down the stairs.
* * * * * *
The whole thing seemed to Percy like some incredible dream;
it was all so unexpected, so untrue to life. He felt conscious of
an enormous shame at the sordidness of the affair, and at the
same time of a kind of hopeless recklessness. The worst had
happened and the best--that was his sole comfort.
Oliver pushed a door open, touched a button, and went through
into the suddenly lit room, followed by Percy. Still in silence,
he pointed to a chair. Percy sat down, and Oliver stood before
the fireplace, his hands deep in the pockets of his jacket,
slightly turned away.
Percy's concentrated senses became aware of every detail of
the room--the deep springy green carpet, smooth under his feet,
the straight hanging thin silk curtains, the half-dozen low
tables with a wealth of flowers upon them, and the books that
lined the walls. The whole room was heavy with the scent of
roses, although the windows were wide, and the night-breeze
stirred the curtains continually. It was a woman's room, he
told himself. Then he looked at the man's figure, lithe, tense,
upright; the dark grey suit not unlike his own, the beautiful
curve of the jaw, the clear pale complexion, the thin nose, the
protruding curve of idealism over the eyes, and the dark hair.
It was a poet's face, he told himself, and the whole personality
was a living and vivid one. Then he turned a little and rose as
the door opened, and Mabel came in, closing it behind her.
She came straight across to her husband, and put a hand on
his shoulder.
"Sit down, my dear," she said. "We must talk a little. Please
sit down, sir."
The three sat down, Percy on one side, and the husband and
wife on a straight-backed settle opposite.
The girl began again.
"This must be arranged at once," she said, "but we must have
no tragedy. Oliver, do you understand? You must not make a
scene. Leave this to me."
She spoke with a curious gaiety; and Percy to his
astonishment saw that she was quite sincere: there was not the
hint of cynicism.
"Oliver, my dear," she said again, "don't mouth like that! It
is all perfectly right. I am going to manage this."
Percy saw a venomous look directed at him by the man; the
girl saw it too, moving her strong humorous eyes from one to
the other. She put her hand on his knee.
"Oliver, attend! Don't look at this gentleman so bitterly. He
has done no harm."
"No harm!" whispered the other.
"No--no harm in the world. What does it matter what that
poor dear upstairs thinks? Now, sir, would you mind telling us
why you came here?"
Percy drew another breath. He had not expected this line.
"I came here to receive Mrs. Brand back into the Church," he
said.
"And you have done so?"
"I have done so."
"Would you mind telling us your name? It makes it so much
more convenient."
Percy hesitated. Then he determined to meet her on her own
ground.
"Certainly. My name is Franklin."
"Father Franklin?" asked the girl, with just the faintest
tinge of mocking emphasis on the first word.
"Yes. Father Percy Franklin, from Archbishop's House,
Westminster," said the priest steadily.
"Well, then, Father Percy Franklin; can you tell us why you
came here? I mean, who sent for you?"
"Mrs. Brand sent for me."
"Yes, but by what means?"
"That I must not say."
"Oh, very good. . . . May we know what good comes of being
`received into the Church?'"
"By being received into the Church, the soul is reconciled to
God."
"Oh! (Oliver, be quiet.) And how do you do it, Father
Franklin?"
Percy stood up abruptly.
"This is no good, madam," he said. "What is the use of these
questions?"
The girl looked at him in open-eyed astonishment, still with
her hand on her husband's knee.
"The use, Father Franklin! Why, we want to know. There is no
church law against your telling us, is there?"
Percy hesitated again. He did not understand in the least
what she was after. Then he saw that he would give them an
advantage if he lost his head at all: so he sat down again.
"Certainly not. I will tell you if you wish to know. I heard
Mrs. Brand's confession, and gave her absolution."
"Oh! yes; and that does it, then? And what next?"
"She ought to receive Holy Communion, and anointing, if she
is in danger of death."
Oliver twitched suddenly.
"Christ!" he said softly.
"Oliver!" cried the girl entreatingly. "Please leave this to
me. It is much better so.--And then, I suppose, Father Franklin,
you want to give those other things to my mother, too?"
"They are not absolutely necessary," said the priest, feeling,
he did not know why, that he was somehow playing a losing
game.
"Oh! they are not necessary? But you would like to?"
"I shall do so if possible. But I have done what is
necessary."
It required all his will to keep quiet. He was as a man who
had armed himself in steel, only to find that his enemy was in
the form of a subtle vapour. He simply had not an idea what to
do next. He would have given anything for the man to have risen
and flown at his throat, for this girl was too much for them
both.
"Yes," she said softly. "Well, it is hardly to be expected
that my husband should give you leave to come here again. But I
am very glad that you have done what you think necessary. No
doubt it will be a satisfaction to you, Father Franklin, and to
the poor old thing upstairs, too. While we--we--" she pressed
her husband's knee--"we do not mind at all. Oh!--but there is
one thing more."
"If you please," said Percy, wondering what on earth was
coming.
"You Christians--forgive me if I say anything rude--but, you
know, you Christians have a reputation for counting heads, and
making the most of converts. We shall be so much obliged,
Father Franklin, if you will give us your word not to advertise
this--this incident. It would distress my husband, and give him
a great deal of trouble."
"Mrs. Brand----" began the priest.
"One moment. . . . You see, we have not treated you badly.
There has been no violence. We will promise not to make scenes
with my mother. Will you promise us that?"
Percy had had time to consider, and he answered instantly.
"Certainly, I will promise that."
Mabel sighed contentedly.
"Well, that is all right. We are so much obliged. . . . And I
think we may say this, that perhaps after consideration my
husband may see his way to letting you come here again to do
Communion and--and the other thing----"
Again that spasm shook the man beside her.
"Well, we will see about that. At any rate, we know your
address, and can let you know. . . . By the way, Father Franklin,
are you going back to Westminster to-night?"
He bowed.
"Ah! I hope you will get through. You will find London very
much excited. Perhaps you heard----"
"Felsenburgh?" said Percy.
"Yes. Julian Felsenburgh," said the girl softly, again with
that strange excitement suddenly alight in her eyes. "Julian
Felsenburgh," she repeated. "He is there, you know. He will stay
in England for the present."
Again Percy was conscious of that slight touch of fear at the
mention of that name.
"I understand there is to be peace," he said.
The girl rose and her husband with her.
"Yes," she said, almost compassionately, "there is to be
peace. Peace at last." (She moved half a step towards him, and
her face glowed like a rose of fire. Her hand rose a little.) "Go
back to London, Father Franklin, and use your eyes. You will see
him, I daresay, and you will see more besides." (Her voice began
to vibrate.) "And you will understand, perhaps, why we have
treated you like this--why we are no longer afraid of you--why
we are willing that my mother should do as she pleases. Oh! you
will understand, Father Franklin--if not to-night, to-morrow;
or if not to-morrow, at least in a very short time."
"Mabel!" cried her husband.
The girl wheeled, and threw her arms round him, and kissed
him on the mouth.
"Oh! I am not ashamed, Oliver, my dear. Let him go and see
for himself. Good-night, Father Franklin."
As he went towards the door, hearing the ping of the bell
that someone touched in the room behind him, he turned once
more, dazed and bewildered; and there were the two, husband and
wife, standing in the soft, sunny light, as if transfigured. The
girl had her arm round the man's shoulder, and stood upright
and radiant as a pillar of fire; and even on the man's face
there was no anger now--nothing but an almost supernatural
pride and confidence. They were both smiling.
Then Percy passed out into the soft, summer night.
(II)
Percy understood nothing except that he was afraid, as he sat
in the crowded car that whirled him up to London. He scarcely
even heard the talk round him, although it was loud and
continuous; and what he heard meant little to him. He
understood only that there had been strange scenes, that London
was said to have gone suddenly mad, that Felsenburgh had spoken
that night in Paul's House.
He was afraid at the way in which he had been treated, and he
asked himself dully again and again what it was that had
inspired that treatment; it seemed that he had been in the
presence of the supernatural; he was conscious of shivering a
little, and of the symptoms of an intolerable sleepiness. It
was scarcely strange to him that he should be sitting in a
crowded car at two o'clock of a summer dawn.
Thrice the car stopped, and he stared out at the signs of
confusion that were everywhere; at the figures that ran in the
twilight between the tracks, at a couple of wrecked carriages, a
tumble of tarpaulins; he listened mechanically to the hoots
and cries that sounded everywhere.
As he stepped out at last on to the platform, he found it
very much as he had left it two hours before. There was the
same desperate rush as the car discharged its load, the same
dead body beneath the seat; and above all, as he ran helplessly
behind the crowd, scarcely knowing whither he ran or why, above
him burned the same stupendous message beneath the clock.
Then he found himself in the lift, and a minute later he was
out on the steps behind the station.
There, too, was an astonishing sight. The lamps still burned
overhead, but beyond them lay the first pale streaks of the
false dawn. The street that ran now straight to the old royal
palace, uniting there, as at the centre of a web, with those that
came from Westminster, the Mall and Hyde Park, was one solid
pavement of heads. On this side and that rose up the hotels and
"Houses of Joy," the windows all ablaze with light, solemn and
triumphant as if to welcome a king; while far ahead against the
sky stood the monstrous palace outlined in fire, and alight
from within like all other houses within view. The noise was
bewildering. It was impossible to distinguish one sound from
another. Voices, horns, drums, the tramp of a thousand
footsteps on the rubber pavements, the sombre roll of wheels
from the station behind,--all united in one overwhelmingly
solemn booming, overscored by shriller notes.
It was impossible to move.
He found himself standing in a position of extraordinary
advantage, at the very top of the broad flight of steps that led
down into the old station yard, now a wide space that united, on
the left the broad road to the palace, and on the right Victoria
Street, that showed like all else one vivid perspective of
lights and heads. Against the sky on his right rose up the
illuminated head of the Cathedral Campanile. It appeared to
him as if he had known that in some previous existence.
He edged himself mechanically a foot or two to his left, till
he clasped a pillar; then he waited, trying not to analyse his
emotions, but to absorb them.
Gradually he became aware that this crowd was as no other
that he had ever seen. To his psychical sense it seemed to him
that it possessed a unity unlike any other. There was magnetism
in the air. There was a sensation as if a creative act were in
process, whereby thousands of individual cells were being welded
more and more perfectly every instant into one huge sentient
being with one will, one emotion, and one head. The crying of
voices seemed significant only as the stirrings of this creative
power which so expressed itself. Here rested this giant
humanity, stretching to his sight in living limbs so far as he
could see on every side, waiting, waiting for some consummation
--stretching, too, as his tired brain began to guess, down every
thoroughfare of the vast city.
He did not even ask himself for what they waited. He knew,
yet he did not know. He knew it was for a revelation--for
something that should crown their aspirations, and fix them so
for ever.
He had a sense that he had seen all this before; and, like a
child, he began to ask himself where it could have happened,
until he remembered that it was so that he had once dreamt of
the Judgement Day--of humanity gathered to meet Jesus Christ--
Jesus Christ! Ah! how tiny that Figure seemed to him now--how
far away--real indeed, but insignificant to himself--how
hopelessly apart from this tremendous life! He glanced up at
the Campanile. Yes; there was a piece of the True Cross there,
was there not?--a little piece of the wood on which a Poor Man
had died twenty centuries ago. . . . Well, well. It was a long way
off. . . .
He did not quite understand what was happening to him.
"Sweet Jesus, be to me not a Judge but a Saviour," he whispered
beneath his breath, gripping the granite of the pillar; and a
moment later knew how futile was that prayer. It was gone like
a breath in this vast, vivid atmosphere of man. He had said
mass, had he not? this morning--in white vestments.--Yes; he
had believed it all then--desperately, but truly; and now. . . .
To look into the future was as useless as to look into the
past. There was no future, and no past: it was all one eternal
instant, present and final. . . .
Then he let go of effort, and again began to see with his
bodily eyes.
* * * * * *
The dawn was coming up the sky now, a steady soft
brightening that appeared in spite of its sovereignty to be as
nothing compared with the brilliant light of the streets. "We
need no sun," he whispered, smiling piteously; "no sun or light
of a candle. We have our light on earth--the light that
lighteneth every man. . . ."
The Campanile seemed further away than ever now, in that
ghostly glimmer of dawn--more and more helpless every
moment, compared with the beautiful vivid shining of the
streets.
Then he listened to the sounds, and it seemed to him as if
somewhere, far down eastwards, there was a silence beginning. He
jerked his head impatiently, as a man behind him began to talk
rapidly and confusedly. Why would he not be silent, and let
silence be heard? . . . The man stopped presently, and out of
the distance there swelled up a roar, as soft as the roll of a
summer tide; it passed up towards him from the right; it was
about him, dinning in his ears. There was no longer any
individual voice: it was the breathing of the giant that had
been born; he was crying out too; he did not know what he said,
but he could not be silent. His veins and nerves seemed alight
with wine; and as he stared down the long street, hearing the
huge cry ebb from him and move toward the palace, he knew why
he had cried, and why he was now silent.
A slender, fish-shaped thing, as white as milk, as ghostly as
a shadow, and as beautiful as the dawn, slid into sight half-a-
mile away, turned and came towards him, floating, as it seemed,
on the very wave of silence that it created, up, up the long
curving street on outstretched wings, not twenty feet above the
heads of the crowd. There was one great sigh, and then silence
once more.
* * * * * *
When Percy could think consciously again--for his will was
only capable of efforts as a clock of ticks--the strange white
thing was nearer. He told himself that he had seen a hundred
such before; and at the same instant that this was different
from all others.
Then it was nearer still, floating slowly, slowly, like a gull
over the sea; he could make out its smooth nose, its low
parapet beyond, the steersman's head motionless; he could even
hear now the soft winnowing of the screw--and then he saw that
for which he had waited.
High on the central deck there stood a chair, draped, too, in
white, with some insignia visible above its back; and in the
chair sat the figure of a man, motionless and lonely. He made
no sign as he came; his dark dress showed vividly against the
whiteness; his head was raised, and he turned it gently now and
again from side to side.
It came nearer still, in the profound stillness; the head
turned, and for an instant the face was plainly visible in the
soft, radiant light.
It was a pale face, strongly marked, as of a young man, with
arched, black eyebrows, thin lips, and white hair.
Then the face turned once more, the steersman shifted his
head, and the beautiful shape, wheeling a little, passed the
corner, and moved up towards the palace.
There was an hysterical yelp somewhere, a cry, and again the
tempestuous groan broke out.
OLIVER Brand was seated at his desk, on the evening of the next
day, reading the leading article of the New People, evening
edition.
"We have had time," he read, "to recover ourselves a little
from the intoxication of last night. Before embarking on
prophecy, it will be as well to recall the facts. Up to
yesterday evening our anxiety with regard to the Eastern crisis
continued; and when twenty-one o'clock struck there were not
more than forty persons in London--the English delegates, that
is to say,--who knew positively that the danger was over.
Between that moment and half-an-hour later the Government
took a few discreet steps: a select number of persons were
informed; the police were called out, with half-a-dozen
regiments, to preserve order; Paul's House was cleared; the
railroad companies were warned; and at the half hour precisely
the announcement was made by means of the electric placards in
every quarter of London, as well as in all large provincial
towns. We have not space now to adequately describe the
admirable manner in which the public authorities did their
duty; it is enough to say that not more than seventy fatalities
took place in the whole of London; nor is it our business to
criticise the action of the Government, in choosing this mode
of making the announcement.
"By twenty-two o'clock Paul's House was filled in every
corner, the old Choir was reserved for members of Parliament
and public officials, the quarter-dome galleries were filled
with ladies, and to the rest of the floor the public was freely
admitted. The volor-police also inform us now that for about
the distance of one mile in every direction round this centre
every thoroughfare was blocked with pedestrians, and, two hours
later, as we all know, practically all the main streets of the
whole of London were in the same condition.
"It was an excellent choice by which Mr. OLIVER BRAND was
selected as the first speaker. His arm was still in bandages;
and the appeal of his figure as well as his passionate words
struck the first explicit note of the evening. A report of his
words will be found in another column. In their turns, the
PRIME MINISTER, Mr. SNOWFORD, the FIRST MINISTER OF THE
ADMIRALTY, the SECRETARY FOR EASTERN AFFAIRS, and LORD
PEMBERTON, all spoke a few words, corroborating the
extraordinary news. At a quarter before twenty-three, the noise
of cheering outside announced the arrival of the American
delegates from Paris, and one by one these ascended the
platform by the south gates of the Old Choir. Each spoke in
turn. It is impossible to appreciate words spoken at such a
moment as this; but perhaps it is not invidious to name Mr.
MARKHAM as the orator who above all others appealed to those
who were privileged to hear him. It was he, too, who told us
explicitly what others had merely mentioned, to the effect that
the success of the American efforts was entirely due to Mr.
JULIAN FELSENBURGH. As yet Mr. FELSENBURGH had not arrived;
but in answer to a roar of enquiry, Mr. MARKHAM announced that
this gentleman would be amongst them in a few minutes. He
then proceeded to describe to us, so far as was possible in a
few sentences, the methods by which Mr. FELSENBURGH had
accomplished what is probably the most astonishing task known
to history. It seems from his words that Mr. FELSENBURGH
(whose biography, so far as it is known, we give in another
column) is probably the greatest orator that the world has ever
known--we use these words deliberately. All languages seem the
same to him; he delivered speeches during the eight months
through which the Eastern Convention lasted, in no less than
fifteen tongues. Of his manner in speaking we shall have a few
remarks to make presently. He showed also, Mr. MARKHAM told
us, the most astonishing knowledge, not only of human nature,
but of every trait under which that divine thing manifests
itself. He appeared acquainted with the history, the prejudices,
the fears, the hopes, the expectations of all the innumerable
sects and castes of the East to whom it was his business to
speak. In fact, as Mr. MARKHAM said, he is probably the first
perfect product of that new cosmopolitan creation to which the
world has laboured throughout its history. In no less than nine
places--Damascus, Irkutsk, Constantinople, Calcutta, Benares,
Nanking, among them,--he was hailed as Messiah by a
Mohammedan mob. Finally, in America, where this extraordinary
figure has arisen, all speak well of him. He has been guilty of
none of those crimes--there is not one that convicts him of
sin--those crimes of the Yellow Press, of corruption, of
commercial or political bullying which have so stained the
past of all those old politicians who made the sister continent
what she has become. Mr. FELSENBURGH has not even formed a
party. He, and not his underlings, have conquered. Those who
were present in Paul's House on this occasion will understand us
when we say that the effect of those words was indescribable.
"When Mr. MARKHAM sat down, there was a silence; then, in
order to quiet the rising excitement, the organist struck the
first chords of the Masonic Hymn; the words were taken up, and
presently not only the whole interior of the building rang with
it, but outside, too, the people responded, and the city of
London for a few moments became indeed a temple of the Lord.
"Now indeed we come to the most difficult part of our task,
and it is better to confess at once that anything resembling
journalistic descriptiveness must be resolutely laid aside. The
greatest things are best told in the simplest words.
"Towards the close of the fourth verse, a figure in a plain
dark suit was observed ascending the steps of the platform. For
a moment this attracted no attention, but when it was seen
that a sudden movement had broken out among the delegates, the
singing began to falter; and it ceased altogether as the figure,
after a slight inclination to right and left, passed up the
further steps that led to the rostrum. Then occurred a curious
incident. The organist aloft at first did not seem to
understand, and continued playing, but a sound broke out from
the crowd resembling a kind of groan, and instantly he ceased.
But no cheering followed. Instead a profound silence dominated
in an instant the huge throng; this, by some strange
magnetism, communicated itself to those without the building,
and when Mr. FELSENBURGH uttered his first words, it was in a
stillness that was like a living thing. We leave the explanation
of this phenomenon to the expert in psychology.
"Of his actual words we have nothing to say. So far as we are
aware no reporter made notes at the moment; but the speech,
delivered in Esperanto, was a very simple one, and very short.
It consisted of a brief announcement of the great fact of
Universal Brotherhood, a congratulation to all who were yet
alive to witness this consummation of history; and, at the end,
an ascription of praise to that Spirit of the World whose
incarnation was now accomplished.
"So much we can say; but we can say nothing as to the
impression of the personality who stood there. In appearance
the man seemed to be about thirty-three years of age, clean-
shaven, upright, with white hair and dark eyes and brows; he
stood motionless with his hands on the rail, he made but one
gesture that drew a kind of sob from the crowd, he spoke these
words slowly, distinctly, and in a clear voice; then he stood
waiting.
"There was no response but a sigh which sounded in the ears
of at least one who heard it as if the whole world drew breath
for the first time; and then that strange heart-shaking silence
fell again. Many were weeping silently, the lips of thousands
moved without a sound, and all faces were turned to that simple
figure, as if the hope of every soul were centred there. So, if
we may believe it, the eyes of many, centuries ago, were turned
on one known now to history as JESUS OF NAZARETH.
"Mr. FELSENBURGH stood so a moment longer, then he turned
down the steps, passed across the platform and disappeared.
"Of what took place outside we have received the following
account from an eye-witness. The white volor, so well known now
to all who were in London that night, had remained stationary
outside the little south door of the Old Choir aisle, poised
about twenty feet above the ground. Gradually it became known
to the crowd, in those few minutes, who it was who had arrived
in it, and upon Mr. FELSENBURGH's reappearance that same
strange groan sounded through the whole length of Paul's
Churchyard, followed by the same silence. The volor descended;
the master stepped on board, and once more the vessel rose to
a height of twenty feet. It was thought at first that some
speech would be made, but none was necessary; and after a
moment's pause, the volor began that wonderful parade which
London will never forget. Four times during the night Mr.
FELSENBURGH went round the enormous metropolis, speaking no
word; and everywhere the groan preceded and followed him, while
silence accompanied his actual passage. Two hours after sunrise
the white ship rose over Hampstead and disappeared towards the
north; and since then he, whom we call, in truth, the Saviour of
the world, has not been seen.
"And now what remains to be said?
"Comment is useless. It is enough to say in one short
sentence that the new era has begun, to which prophets and
kings, and the suffering, the dying, all who labour and are
heavy-laden, have aspired in vain. Not only has intercontinental
rivalry ceased to exist, but the strife of home dissensions has
ceased also. Of him who has been the herald of its inauguration
we have nothing more to say. Time alone can show what is yet
left for him to do.
"But what has been done is as follows. The Eastern peril has
been for ever dissipated. It is understood now, by fanatic
barbarians as well as by civilised nations, that the reign of
War is ended. `Not peace but a sword,' said CHRIST; and bitterly
true have those words proved to be. `Not a sword but peace' is
the retort, articulate at last, from those who have renounced
CHRIST's claims or have never accepted them. The principle of
love and union learned however falteringly in the West during
the last century, has been taken up in the East as well. There
shall be no more an appeal to arms, but to justice; no longer a
crying after a God Who hides Himself, but to Man who has
learned his own Divinity. The Supernatural is dead; rather, we
know now that it never yet has been alive. What remains is to
work out this new lesson, to bring every action, word and
thought to the bar of Love and Justice; and this will be, no
doubt, the task of years. Every code must be reversed; every
barrier thrown down; party must unite with party, country with
country, and continent with continent. There is no longer the
fear of fear, the dread of the hereafter, or the paralysis of
strife. Man has groaned long enough in the travails of birth;
his blood has been poured out like water through his own
foolishness; but at length he understands himself and is at
peace.
"Let it be seen at least that England is not behind the
nations in this work of reformation; let no national isolation,
pride of race, or drunkenness of wealth hold her hands back
from this enormous work. The responsibility is incalculable,
but the victory certain. Let us go softly, humbled by the
knowledge of our crimes in the past, confident in the hope of
our achievements in the future, towards that reward which is in
sight at last--the reward hidden so long by the selfishness of
men, the darkness of religion, and the strife of tongues--the
reward promised by one who knew not what he said and denied
what he asserted--Blessed are the meek, the peacemakers, the
merciful, for they shall inherit the earth, be named the
children of God, and find mercy."
Oliver, white to the lips, with his wife kneeling now beside
him, turned the page and read one more short paragraph, marked
as being the latest news.
"It is understood that the Government is in communication
with Mr. Felsenburgh."
(II)
"Ah! it is journalese," said Oliver, at last, leaning back.
"Tawdry stuff! But--but the thing!"
Mabel got up, passed across to the window-seat, and sat down.
Her lips opened once or twice, but she said nothing.
"My darling," cried the man, "have you nothing to say?"
She looked at him tremulously a moment.
"Say!" she said. "As you said, What is the use of words?"
"Tell me again," said Oliver. "How do I know it is not a
dream?"
"A dream," she said. "Was there ever a dream like this?"
Again she got up restlessly, came across the floor, and knelt
down by her husband once more, taking his hands in hers.
"My dear," she said. "I tell you it is not a dream. It is
reality at last. I was there too--do you not remember? You
waited for me when all was over--when He was gone out--we saw
Him together, you and I. We heard Him--you on the platform and
I in the gallery. We saw Him again pass up the Embankment as
we stood in the crowd. Then we came home--and we found the
priest."
Her face was transfigured as she spoke. It was as of one who
saw a Divine Vision. She spoke very quietly, without excitement
or hysteria. Oliver stared at her a moment; then he bent
forward and kissed her gently.
"Yes, my darling: it is true. But I want to hear it again and
again. Tell me again what you saw."
"I saw the Son of Man," she said. "Oh! there is no other
phrase. The Saviour of the world, as that paper says. I knew Him
in my heart as soon as I saw Him--as we all did--as soon as He
stood there holding the rail. It was like a glory round his
head. I understand it all now. It was He for whom we have waited
so long; and He has come, bringing Peace and Goodwill in His
hands. When He spoke, I knew it again. His voice was as--as the
sound of the sea--as simple as that--as--as lamentable--as
strong as that.--Did you not hear it?"
Oliver bowed his head.
"I can trust Him for all the rest," went on the girl softly.
"I do not know where He is, nor when He will come back, nor
what He will do. I suppose there is a great deal for Him to do,
before He is fully known--laws, reforms--that will be your
business, my dear. And the rest of us must wait, and love, and
be content."
Oliver again lifted his face and looked at her.
"Mabel, my dear----"
"Oh! I knew it even last night," she said, "but I did not know
that I knew it till I awoke to-day and remembered. I dreamed of
Him all night. . . . Oliver, where is He?"
He shook his head.
"Yes, I know where He is, but I am under oath----"
She nodded quickly, and stood up.
"Yes. I should not have asked that. Well, we are content to
wait."
There was silence for a moment or two. Oliver broke it.
"My dear, what do you mean when you say that He is not yet
known?"
"I mean just that," she said. "The rest only know what He has
done--not what He is; but that, too, will come in time."
"And meanwhile----"
"Meanwhile, you must work; the rest will come by and bye.
Oh! Oliver, be strong and faithful."
She kissed him quickly, and went out.
* * * * * *
Oliver sat on without moving, staring, as his habit was, out
at the wide view beyond his windows. This time yesterday he was
leaving Paris, knowing the fact indeed--for the delegates had
arrived an hour before--but ignorant of the Man. Now he knew
the Man as well--at least he had seen Him, heard Him, and stood
enchanted under the glow of His personality. He could explain
it to himself no more than could anyone else--unless, perhaps,
it were Mabel. The others had been as he had been: awed and
overcome, yet at the same time kindled in the very depths of
their souls. They had come out--Snowford, Cartwright,
Pemberton, and the rest--on to the steps of Paul's House,
following that strange figure. They had intended to say
something, but they were dumb as they saw the sea of white
faces, heard the groan and the silence, and experienced that
compelling wave of magnetism that surged up like something
physical, as the volor rose and started on that indescribable
progress.
Once more he had seen Him, as he and Mabel stood together
on the deck of the electric boat that carried them south. The
white ship had passed along overhead, smooth and steady, above
the heads of that vast multitude, bearing Him who, if any had
the right to that title, was indeed the Saviour of the world.
Then they had come home, and found the priest.
That, too, had been a shock to him; for, at first sight, it
seemed that this priest was the very man he had seen ascend the
rostrum two hours before. It was an extraordinary likeness--the
same young face and white hair. Mabel, of course, had not
noticed it; for she had only seen Felsenburgh at a great
distance; and he himself had soon been reassured. And as for
his mother--it was terrible enough; if it had not been for
Mabel there would have been violence done last night. How
collected and reasonable she had been! And, as for his mother--
he must leave her alone for the present. By and bye, perhaps,
something might be done. The future! It was that which
engrossed him--the future, and the absorbing power of the
personality under whose dominion he had fallen last night. All
else seemed insignificant now--even his mother's defection, her
illness--all paled before this new dawn of an unknown sun. And
in an hour he would know more; he was summoned to
Westminster to a meeting of the whole House; their proposals
to Felsenburgh were to be formulated; it was intended to offer
him a great position.
Yes, as Mabel had said; this was now their work--to carry
into effect the new principle that had suddenly become
incarnate in this grey-haired young American--the principle of
Universal Brotherhood. It would mean enormous labour; all
foreign relations would have to be readjusted--trade, policy,
methods of government--all demanded re-statement. Europe was
already organised internally on a basis of mutual protection:
that basis was now gone. There was no more any protection,
because there was no more any menace. Enormous labour, too,
awaited the Government in other directions. A Blue-book must
be prepared, containing a complete report of the proceedings in
the East, together with the text of the Treaty which had been
laid before them in Paris signed by the Eastern Emperor, the
feudal kings, the Turkish Republic, and countersigned by the
American plenipotentiaries. . . . Finally, even home politics
required reform: the friction of old strife between centre and
extremes must cease forthwith--there must be but one party
now, and that at the Prophet's disposal. . . . He grew bewildered
as he regarded the prospect, and saw how the whole plane of the
world was shifted, how the entire foundation of western life
required readjustment. It was a Revolution indeed, a cataclysm
more stupendous than even invasion itself; but it was the
conversion of darkness into light, and chaos into order.
He drew a deep breath, and so sat pondering.
* * * * * *
Mabel came down to him half-an-hour later, as he dined early
before starting for Whitehall.
"Mother is quieter," she said. "We must be very patient,
Oliver. Have you decided yet as to whether the priest is to come
again?"
He shook his head.
"I can think of nothing," he said, "but of what I have to do.
You decide, my dear; I leave it in your hands."
She nodded.
"I will talk to her again presently. Just now she can
understand very little of what has happened. . . . What time
shall you be home?"
"Probably not to-night. We shall sit all night."
"Yes, dear. And what shall I tell Mr. Phillips?"
"I will telephone in the morning . . . Mabel, do you
remember what I told you about the priest?"
"His likeness to the other?"
"Yes. What do you make of that?"
She smiled.
"I make nothing at all of it. Why should they not be alike?"
He took a fig from the dish, and swallowed it, and stood up.
"It is only very curious," he said. "Now, good-night, my
dear."
(III)
"Oh, mother," said Mabel, kneeling by the bed; "cannot you
understand what has happened?"
She had tried desperately to tell the old lady of the
extraordinary change that had taken place in the world--and
without success. It seemed to her that some great issue
depended on it; that it would be piteous if the old woman went
out into the dark unconscious of what had come. It was as if a
Christian knelt by the death-bed of a Jew on the first Easter
Monday. But the old lady lay in her bed, terrified but obdurate.
"Mother," said the girl, "let me tell you again. Do you not
understand that all which Jesus Christ promised has come true,
though in another way? The reign of God has really begun; but
we know now who God is. You said just now you wanted the
Forgiveness of Sins; well, you have that; we all have it, because
there is no such thing as sin. There is only Crime. And then
Communion. You used to believe that that made you a partaker
of God; well, we are all partakers of God, because we are human
beings. Don't you see that Christianity is only one way of
saying all that? I daresay it was the only way, for a time; but
that is all over now. Oh! and how much better this is! It is
true--true. You can see it to be true!"
She paused a moment, forcing herself to look at that piteous
old face, the flushed wrinkled cheeks, the writhing knotted
hands on the coverlet.
"Look how Christianity has failed--how it has divided people;
think of all the cruelties--the Inquisition, the Religious Wars;
the separations between husband and wife and parents and
children--the disobedience to the State, the treasons. Oh! you
cannot believe that these were right. What kind of a God would
that be! And then Hell; how could you ever have believed in
that? . . . Oh! mother, don't believe anything so frightful. . . .
Don't you understand that that God has gone--that He never
existed at all--that it was all a hideous nightmare; and that
now we all know at last what the truth is. . . . Mother! think of
what happened last night--how He came--the Man of whom you
were so frightened. I told you what He was like--so quiet and
strong--how everyone was silent--of the--the extraordinary
atmosphere, and how six millions of people saw Him. And think
what He has done--how He has healed all the old wounds--how
the whole world is at peace at last--and of what is going to
happen. Oh! mother, give up those horrible old lies; give them
up; be brave."
"The priest, the priest!" moaned the old woman at last.
"Oh! no, no, no--not the priest; he can do nothing. He knows
it's all lies, too!"
"The priest! the priest!" moaned the other again. "He can
tell you; he knows the answer."
Her face was convulsed with effort, and her old fingers
fumbled and twisted with the rosary. Mabel grew suddenly
frightened, and stood up.
"Oh! mother!" She stooped and kissed her. "There! I won't say
any more now. But just tank about it quietly. Don't be in the
least afraid; it is all perfectly right."
She stood a moment, still looking compassionately down;
torn by sympathy and desire. No! it was no use now; she must
wait till the next day.
"I'll look in again presently," she said, "when you have had
dinner. Mother! don't look like that! Kiss me!"
It was astonishing, she told herself that evening, how anyone
could be so blind. And what a confession of weakness, too, to
call only for the priest! It was ludicrous, absurd!
She herself was filled with an extraordinary peace. Even
death itself seemed now no longer terrible, for was not death
swallowed up in victory? She contrasted the selfish
individualism of the Christian, who sobbed and shrank from
death, or, at the best, thought of it only as the gate to his own
eternal life, with the free altruism of the New Believer who
asked no more than that Man should live and grow, that the
Spirit of the World should triumph and reveal Himself, while
he, the unit, was content to sink back into that reservoir of
energy from which he drew his life. At this moment she would
have suffered anything, faced death cheerfully--she
contemplated even the old woman upstairs with pity--for was it
not piteous that death should not bring her to herself and
reality?
She was in a quiet whirl of intoxication; it was as if the
heavy veil of sense had rolled back at last and shown a sweet,
eternal landscape behind--a shadowless land of peace where the
lion lay down with the lamb, and the leopard with the kid.
There should be war no more: that bloody spectre was dead, and
with him the brood of evil that lived in his shadow--
superstition, conflict, terror, and unreality. The idols were
smashed, and rats had run out; Jehovah was fallen; the wild-
eyed dreamer of Galilee was in his grave; the reign of priests
was ended. And in their place stood a strange, quiet figure of
indomitable power and unruffled tenderness. . . . He whom she
had seen--the Son of Man, the Saviour of the world, as she had
called Him just now--He who bore these titles was no longer a
monstrous figure, half God and half man, claiming both natures
and possessing neither; one who was tempted without
temptation, and who conquered without merit, as his followers
said. Here was one instead whom she could follow, a god indeed
and a man as well--a God because human, and a man because so
divine.
* * * * * *
She said no more that night. She looked into the bedroom
for a few minutes, and saw the old woman asleep. Her old hand
lay out on the coverlet, and still between the fingers was
twisted the silly string of beads. Mabel went softly across in
the shaded light, and tried to detach it; but the wrinkled
fingers writhed and closed, and a murmur came from the half-
open lips. Ah! how piteous it was, thought the girl, how
hopeless that a soul should flow out into such darkness,
unwilling to make the supreme, generous surrender, and lay down
its life because life itself demanded it!
* * * * * *
The clocks were chiming three, and the grey dawn lay on the
walls, when she awoke to find by her bed the woman who had sat
with the old lady.
"Come at once, madam; Mrs. Brand is dying."
(IV)
Oliver was with them by six o'clock; he came straight up
into his mother's room to find that all was over.
The room was full of the morning light and the clean air,
and a bubble of bird-music poured in from the lawn. But his
wife kneeled by the bed, still holding the wrinkled hands of the
old woman, her face buried in her arms. The face of his mother
was quieter than he had ever seen it, the lines showed only like
the faintest shadows on an alabaster mask; her lips were set in
a smile. He looked for a moment, waiting until the spasm that
caught his throat had died again. Then he put his hand on his
wife's shoulder.
"When?" he said.
Mabel lifted her face.
"Oh! Oliver," she murmured. "It was an hour ago. . . . Look at
this."
She released the dead hands and showed the rosary still
twisted there; it had snapped in the last struggle, and a brown
bead lay beneath the fingers.
"I did what I could," sobbed Mabel. "I was not hard with her.
But she would not listen. She kept on crying out for the priest
as long as she could speak."
"My dear . . ." began the man. Then he, too, went down on his
knees by his wife, leaned forward and kissed the rosary, while
tears blinded him.
"Yes, yes," he said. "Leave her in peace. I would not move it
for the world: it was her toy, was it not?"
The girl stared at him, astonished.
"We can be generous, too," he said. "We have all the world at
last. And she--she has lost nothing: it was too late."
"I did what I could."
"Yes, my darling, and you were right. But she was too old;
she could not understand."
He paused.
"Euthanasia?" he whispered with something very like
tenderness.
She nodded.
"Yes," she said; "just as the last agony began. She resisted,
but I knew you would wish it."
They talked together for an hour in the garden before Oliver
went to his room; and he began to tell her presently of all
that had passed.
"He has refused," he said. "We offered to create an office for
Him; He was to have been called Consultor, and He refused it
two hours ago. But He has promised to be at our service. . . .
No, I must not tell you where He is. . . . He will return to
America soon, we think; but He will not leave us. We have drawn
up a programme, and it is to be sent to Him presently. . . .
Yes, we were unanimous."
"And the programme?"
"It concerns the Franchise, the Poor Laws and Trade. I can
tell you no more than that. It was He who suggested the points.
But we are not sure if we understand Him yet."
"But, my dear----"
"Yes; it is quite extraordinary. I have never seen such
things. There was practically no argument."
"Do the people understand?"
"I think so. We shall have to guard against a reaction. They
say that the Catholics will be in danger. There is an article
this morning in the Era. The proofs were sent to us for
sanction. It suggests that means must be taken to protect the
Catholics."
Mabel smiled.
"It is a strange irony," he said. "But they have a right to
exist. How far they have a right to share in the government is
another matter. That will come before us, I think, in a week or
two."
"Tell me more about Him."
"There is really nothing to tell; we know nothing, except
that He is the supreme force in the world. France is in a
ferment, and has offered him Dictatorship. That, too, he has
refused. Germany has made the same proposal as ourselves;
Italy, the same as France, with the title of Perpetual Tribune.
America has done nothing yet, and Spain is divided."
"And the East?"
"The Emperor thanked Him; no more than that."
Mabel drew a long breath, and stood looking out across the
heat haze that was beginning to rise from the town beneath.
These were matters so vast that she could not take them in. But
to her imagination Europe lay like a busy hive, moving to and
fro in the sunshine. She saw the blue distance of France, the
towns of Germany, the Alps, and beyond them the Pyrenees and
sun-baked Spain; and all were intent on the same business, to
capture if they could this astonishing figure that had risen
over the world. Sober England, too, was alight with zeal. Each
country desired nothing better than that this man should rule
over them; and He had refused them all.
"He has refused them all!" she repeated breathlessly.
"Yes, all. We think He may be waiting to hear from America.
He still holds office there, you know."
"How old is He?"
"Not more than thirty-two or three. He has only been in
office a few months. Before that He lived alone in Vermont.
Then He stood for the Senate; then He made a speech or two;
then He was appointed delegate, though no one seems to have
realised His power. And the rest we know."
Mabel shook her head meditatively.
"We know nothing," she said. "Nothing; nothing! Where did He
learn His languages?"
"It is supposed that He travelled for many years. But no one
knows. He has said nothing."
She turned swiftly to her husband.
"But what does it all mean? What is His power? Tell me,
Oliver?"
He smiled back, shaking his head.
"Well, Markham said that it was his incorruption--that and
his oratory; but that explains nothing."
"No, it explains nothing," said the girl.
"It is just personality," went on Oliver, "at least, that's the
label to use. But that, too, is only a label."
"Yes, just a label. But it is that. They all felt it in Paul's
house, and in the streets afterwards. Did you not feel it?"
"Feel it!" cried the man, with shining eyes. "Why, I would die
for Him!"
* * * * * *
They went back to the house presently, and it was not till
they reached the door that either said a word about the dead old
woman who lay upstairs.
"They are with her now," said Mabel softly. "I will
communicate with the people."
He nodded gravely.
"It had better be this afternoon," he said. "I have a spare
hour at fourteen o'clock. Oh! by the way, Mabel, do you know who
took the message to the priest?"
"I think so."
"Yes, it was Phillips. I saw him last night. He will not come
here again."
"Did he confess it?"
"He did. He was most offensive."
But Oliver's face softened again as he nodded to his wife at
the foot of the stairs, and turned to go up once more to his
mother's room.
IT seemed to Percy Franklin as he drew near Rome, sliding five
hundred feet high through the summer dawn, that he was
approaching the very gates of heaven, or, still better, he was as
a child coming home. For what he had left behind him ten hours
before in London was not a bad specimen, he thought, of the
superior mansions of hell. It was a world whence God seemed to
have withdrawn Himself, leaving it indeed in a state of profound
complacency--a state without hope or faith, but a condition in
which, although life continued, there was absent the one
essential to well-being. It was not that there was not
expectation--for London was on tip-toe with excitement. There
were rumours of all kinds: Felsenburgh was coming back; he was
back; he had never gone. He was to be President of the Council,
Prime Minister, Tribune, with full capacities of democratic
government and personal sacro-sanctity, even King--if not
Emperor of the West. The entire constitution was to be
remodelled, there was to be a complete rearrangement of the
pieces; crime was to be abolished by the mysterious power that
had killed war; there was to be free food--the secret of life
was discovered, there was to be no more death--so the rumours
ran. . . . Yet that was lacking, to the priest's mind, which made
life worth living. . . .
In Paris, while the volor waited at the great station at
Montmartre, once known as the Church of the Sacred Heart, he
had heard the roaring of the mob in love with life at last, and
seen the banners go past. As it rose again over the suburbs he
had seen the long lines of trains streaming in, visible as
bright serpents in the brilliant glory of the electric globes,
bringing the country folk up to the Council of the Nation which
the legislators, mad with drama, had summoned to decide the
great question. At Lyons it had been the same. The night was as
clear as the day, and as full of sound. Mid France was arriving
to register its votes.
He had fallen asleep as the cold air of the Alps began to
envelope the car, and had caught but glimpses of the solemn
moonlit peaks below him, the black profundities of the gulfs,
the silver glint of the shield-like lakes, and the soft glow of
Interlaken and the towns in the Rhone valley. Once he had been
moved in spite of himself, as one of the huge German volors
had passed in the night, a blaze of ghostly lights and gilding,
resembling a huge moth with antennæ of electric light, and the
two ships had saluted one another through half a league of
silent air, with a pathetic cry as of two strange night-birds
who have no leisure to pause. Milan and Turin had been quiet,
for Italy was organised on other principles than France, and
Florence was not yet half awake. And now the Campagna was
slipping past like a grey-green rug, wrinkled and tumbled, five
hundred feet beneath, and Rome was all but in sight. The
indicator above his seat moved its finger from one hundred to
ninety miles.
He shook off the doze at last, and drew out his office book;
but as he pronounced the words his attention was elsewhere,
and, when Prime was said, he closed the book once more, propped
himself more comfortably, drawing the furs round him, and
stretching his feet on the empty seat opposite. He was alone in
his compartment; the three men who had come in at Paris had
descended at Turin.
* * * * * *
He had been remarkably relieved when the message had come
three days before from the Cardinal-Protector, bidding him
make arrangements for a long absence from England, and, as
soon as that was done, to come to Rome. He understood that the
ecclesiastical authorities were really disturbed at last.
He reviewed the last day or two, considering the report he
would have to present. Since his last letter, three days before,
seven notable apostasies had taken place in Westminster diocese
alone, two priests and five important laymen. There was talk of
revolt on all sides; he had seen a threatening document, called
a "petition," demanding the right to dispense with all
ecclesiastical vestments, signed by one hundred and twenty
priests from England and Wales. The "petitioners" pointed out
that persecution was coming swiftly at the hands of the mob;
that the Government was not sincere in the promises of
protection; they hinted that religious loyalty was already
strained to breaking-point even in the case of the most
faithful, and that with all but those it had already broken.
And as to his comments Percy was clear. He would tell the
authorities, as he had already told them fifty times, that it
was not persecution that mattered; it was this new outburst of
enthusiasm for Humanity--an enthusiasm which had waxed a
hundredfold more hot since the coming of Felsenburgh and the
publication of the Eastern news--which was melting the hearts
of all but the very few. Man had suddenly fallen in love with
man. The conventional were rubbing their eyes and wondering
why they had ever believed, or even dreamed, that there was a
God to love, asking one another what was the secret of the
spell that had held them so long. Christianity and Theism were
passing together from the world's mind as a morning mist
passes when the sun comes up. His recommendations--? Yes, he
had those clear, and ran them over in his mind with a sense of
despair.
For himself, he scarcely knew if he believed what he
professed. His emotions seemed to have been finally
extinguished in the vision of the white car and the silence of
the crowd that evening three weeks before. It had been so
horribly real and positive; the delicate aspirations and hopes
of the soul appeared so shadowy when compared with that
burning, heart-shaking passion of the people. He had never seen
anything like it; no congregation under the spell of the most
kindling preacher alive had ever responded with one-tenth of
the fervour with which that irreligious crowd, standing in the
cold dawn of the London streets, had greeted the coming of
their saviour. And as for the man himself--Percy could not
analyse what it was that possessed him as he had stared,
muttering the name of Jesus, on that quiet figure in black with
features and hair so like his own. He only knew that a hand had
gripped his heart--a hand warm, not cold--and had quenched, it
seemed, all sense of religious conviction. It had only been with
an effort that sickened him to remember, that he had refrained
from that interior act of capitulation that is so familiar to
all who have cultivated an inner life and understand what
failure means. There had been one citadel that had not flung
wide its gates--all else had yielded. His emotions had been
stormed, his intellect silenced, his memory of grace obscured,
a spiritual nausea had sickened his soul, yet the secret fortress
of the will had, in an agony, held fast the doors and refused to
cry out and call Felsenburgh king.
Ah! how he had prayed during those three weeks! It appeared
to him that he had done little else; there had been no peace.
Lances of doubt thrust again and again through door and window;
masses of argument had crashed from above; he had been on the
alert day and night, repelling this, blindly, and denying that,
endeavouring to keep his foothold on the slippery plane of the
supernatural, sending up cry after cry to the Lord Who hid
Himself. He had slept with his crucifix in his hand, he had
awakened himself by kissing it; while he wrote, talked, ate,
walked, and sat in cars, the inner life had been busy--making
frantic speechless acts of faith in a religion which his
intellect denied and from which his emotions shrank. There had
been moments of ecstasy--now in a crowded street, when he
recognised that God was all, that the Creator was the key to the
creature's life, that a humble act of adoration was
transcendently greater than the most noble natural act, that
the Supernatural was the origin and end of existence--there had
come to him such moments in the night, in the silence of the
Cathedral, when the lamp flickered, and a soundless air had
breathed from the iron door of the tabernacle. Then again
passion ebbed, and left him stranded on misery, but set with a
determination (which might equally be that of pride or faith)
that no power in earth or hell should hinder him from
professing Christianity even if he could not realise it. It was
Christianity alone that made life tolerable.
Percy drew a long vibrating breath, and changed his position;
for far away his unseeing eyes had descried a dome, like a blue
bubble set on a carpet of green; and his brain had interrupted
itself to tell him that this was Rome.
He got up presently, passed out of his compartment, and
moved forward up the central gangway, seeing, as he went,
through the glass doors to right and left his fellow-passengers,
some still asleep, some staring out at the view, some reading.
He put his eye to the glass square in the door, and for a minute
or two watched, fascinated, the steady figure of the steerer at
his post. There he stood motionless, his hands on the steel
circle that directed the vast wings, his eyes on the wind-gauge
that revealed to him as on the face of a clock both the force
and the direction of the high gusts; now and again his hands
moved slightly, and the huge fans responded, now lifting, now
lowering. Beneath him and in front, fixed on a circular table,
were the glass domes of various indicators--Percy did not know
the meaning of half--one seemed a kind of barometer, intended,
he guessed, to declare the height at which they were travelling,
another a compass. And beyond, through the curved windows, lay
the enormous sky. Well, it was all very wonderful, thought the
priest, and it was with the force of which all this was but one
symptom that the supernatural had to compete.
He sighed, turned, and went back to his compartment.
It was an astonishing vision that began presently to open
before him,--scarcely beautiful except for its strangeness, and
as unreal as a raised map. Far to his right, as he could see
through the glass doors, lay the grey line of the sea against
the luminous sky, rising and falling ever so slightly as the car,
apparently motionless, tilted imperceptibly against the
western breeze; the only other movement was the faint
pulsation of the huge throbbing screw in the rear. To the left
stretched the limitless country, flitting beneath, in glimpses
seen between the motionless wings, with here and there the
streak of a village, flattened out of recognition, or the flash
of water, and bounded far away by the low masses of the Umbrian
hills; while in front, seen and gone again as the car veered, lay
the confused line of Rome and the huge new suburbs, all crowned
by the great dome growing every instant. Around, above and
beneath, his eyes were conscious of wide air-spaces, overhead
deepening into lapis-lazuli down to horizons of pale turquoise.
The only sound, of which he had long ceased to be directly
conscious, was that of the steady rush of air, less shrill now as
the speed began to drop down--down--to forty miles an hour.
There was a clang of a bell, and immediately he was aware of a
sense of faint sickness as the car dropped in a glorious swoop,
and he staggered a little as he grasped his rugs together. When
he looked again the motion seemed to have ceased; he could see
towers ahead, a line of house-roofs, and beneath he caught a
glimpse of a road and more roofs with patches of green
between. A bell clanged again, and a long sweet cry followed. On
all sides he could hear the movement of feet; a guard in
uniform passed swiftly along the glazed corridor; again came
the faint nausea; and as he looked up once more from his
luggage for an instant he saw the dome, grey now and lined,
almost on a level with his own eyes, huge against the vivid sky.
The world span round for a moment; he shut his eyes, and when
he looked again walls seemed to heave up past him and stop,
swaying. There was the last bell, a faint vibration as the car
grounded in the steel-netted dock; a line of faces rocked and
grew still outside the windows, and Percy passed out towards the
doors, carrying his bags.
(II)
He still felt a sense of insecure motion as he sat alone over
coffee an hour later in one of the remote rooms of the
Vatican; but there was a sense of exhilaration as well, as his
tired brain realised where he was. It had been strange to drive
over the rattling stones in the weedy little cab, such as he
remembered ten years ago when he had left Rome, newly
ordained. While the world had moved on, Rome had stood still;
she had other affairs to think of than physical improvements,
now that the spiritual weight of the earth rested entirely upon
her shoulders. All had seemed unchanged--or rather it had
reverted to the condition of nearly one hundred and fifty years
ago. Histories related how the improvements of the Italian
government had gradually dropped out of use as soon as the
city, eighty years before, had been given her independence; the
trams ceased to run; volors were not allowed to enter the
wails; the new buildings, permitted to remain, had been
converted to ecclesiastical use; the Quirinal became the offices
of the "Red Pope"; the embassies, huge seminaries; even the
Vatican itself, with the exception of the upper floor, had
become the abode of the Sacred College, who surrounded the
Supreme Pontiff as stars their sun.
It was an extraordinary city, said antiquarians--the one
living example of the old days. Here were to be seen the
ancient inconveniences, the insanitary horrors, the incarnation
of a world given over to dreaming. The old Church pomp was
back, too; the cardinals drove again in gilt coaches; the Pope
rode on his white mule; the Blessed Sacrament went through the
ill-smelling streets with the sound of bells and the light of
lanterns. A brilliant description of it had interested the
civilised world immensely for about forty-eight hours; the
appalling retrogression was still used occasionally as the text
for violent denunciations by the poorly educated; the well-
educated had ceased to do anything but take for granted that
superstition and progress were irreconcilable enemies.
Yet Percy, even in the glimpses he had had in the streets, as
he drove from the volor station outside the People's Gate, of
the old peasant dresses, the blue and red-fringed wine carts, the
cabbage-strewn gutters, the wet clothes flapping on strings, the
mules and horses--strange though these were, he had found them
a refreshment. It had seemed to remind him that man was
human, and not divine as the rest of the world proclaimed--
human, and therefore careless and individualistic; human, and
therefore occupied with interests other than those of speed,
cleanliness, and precision.
The room in which he sat now by the window with shading
blinds, for the sun was already hot, seemed to revert back even
further than to a century-and-a-half. The old damask and gilding
that he had expected was gone, and its absence gave the
impression of great severity. There was a wide deal table
running the length of the room, with upright wooden arm chairs
set against it; the floor was red-tiled, with strips of matting
for the feet, the white, distempered walls had only a couple of
old pictures hung upon them, and a large crucifix flanked by
candles stood on a little altar by the further door. There was
no more furniture than that, with the exception of a writing-
desk between the windows, on which stood a typewriter. That
jarred somehow in his sense of fitness, and he wondered at it.
He finished the last drop of coffee in the thick-rimmed white
cup, and sat back in his chair.
Already the burden was lighter, and he was astonished at the
swiftness with which it had become so. Life looked simpler
here; the interior world was taken more for granted; it was not
even a matter of debate. There it was, imperious and objective,
and through it glimmered to the eyes of the soul the old
Figures that had become shrouded behind the rush of worldly
circumstance. The very shadow of God appeared to rest here; it
was no longer impossible to realise that the saints watched and
interceded, that Mary sat on her throne, that the white disc on
the altar was Jesus Christ. Percy was not yet at peace--after
all, he had been but an hour in Rome; and air, charged with
never so much grace, could scarcely do more than it had done.
But he felt more at ease, less desperately anxious, more
childlike, more content to rest on the authority that claimed
without explanation, and asserted that the world, as a matter
of fact, proved by evidences without and within, was made this
way and not that, for this purpose and not the other. Yet he had
used the conveniences which he hated; he had left London a bare
twelve hours before, and now here he sat in a place which was
either a stagnant backwater of life, or else the very mid-
current of it; he was not yet sure which.
* * * * * *
There was a step outside, a handle was turned; and the
Cardinal-Protector came through.
Percy had not seen him for four years, and for a moment
scarcely recognised him.
It was a very old man that he saw now, bent and feeble, his
face covered with wrinkles, crowned by very thin, white hair, and
the little scarlet cap on top; he was in his black Benedictine
habit with a plain abbatial cross on his breast, and walked
hesitatingly, with a black stick. The only sign of vigour was in
the narrow bright slit of his eyes showing beneath drooping
lids. He held out his hand, smiling, and Percy, remembering in
time that he was in the Vatican, bowed low only as he kissed
the amethyst.
"Welcome to Rome, father," said the old man, speaking with
an unexpected briskness. "They told me you were here half-an-
hour ago; I thought I would leave you to wash and have your
coffee."
Percy murmured something.
"Yes; you are tired, no doubt," said the Cardinal, pulling out
a chair.
"Indeed not, your Eminence. I slept excellently."
The Cardinal made a little gesture to a chair.
"But I must have a word with you. The Holy Father wishes to
see you at eleven o'clock."
Percy started a little.
"We move quickly in these days, father. . . . There is no time
to dawdle. You understand that you are to remain in Rome for
the present?"
"I have made all arrangements for that, your Eminence."
"That is very well. . . . We are pleased with you here, Father
Franklin. The Holy Father has been greatly impressed by your
comments. You have foreseen things in a very remarkable
manner."
Percy flushed with pleasure. It was almost the first hint of
encouragement he had had. Cardinal Martin went on.
"I may say that you are considered our most valuable
correspondent--certainly in England. That is why you are
summoned. You are to help us here in future--a kind of
consultor: anyone can relate facts; not everyone can understand
them. . . . You look very young, father. How old are you?"
"I am thirty-three, your Eminence."
"Ah! your white hair helps you. . . . Now, father, will you
come with me into my room? It is now eight o'clock. I will
keep you till nine--no longer. Then you shall have some rest,
and at eleven I shall take you up to his Holiness."
* * * * * *
Percy rose with a strange sense of elation, and ran to open
the door for the Cardinal to go through.
(III)
At a few minutes before eleven Percy came out of his little
white-washed room in his new ferraiuola, soutane and buckled
shoes, and tapped at the door of the Cardinal's room.
He felt a great deal more self-possessed now. He had talked
to the Cardinal freely and strongly, had described the effect
that Felsenburgh had had upon London, and even the paralysis
that had seized upon himself. He had stated his belief that they
were on the edge of a movement unparalleled in history: he
related little scenes that he had witnessed--a group kneeling
before a picture of Felsenburgh, a dying man calling him by
name, the aspect of the crowd that had waited in Westminster to
hear the result of the offer made to this stranger. He showed
him half-a-dozen cuttings from newspapers, pointing out their
hysterical enthusiasm; he even went so far as to venture upon
prophecy, and to declare his belief that persecution was within
reasonable distance.
"The world seems very oddly alive," he said; "it is as if the
whole thing was flushed and nervous."
The Cardinal nodded.
"We too," he said, "even we feel it."
For the rest the Cardinal had sat watching him out of his
narrow eyes, nodding from time to time, putting an occasional
question, but listening throughout with great attention.
"And your recommendations, father----" he had said, and then
interrupted himself. "No, that is too much to ask. The Holy
Father will speak of that."
He had congratulated him upon his Latin then--for they had
spoken in that language throughout this second interview; and
Percy had explained how loyal Catholic England had been in
obeying the order, given ten years before, that Latin should
become to the Church what Esperanto was becoming to the
world.
"That is very well," said the old man. "His Holiness will be
pleased at that."
* * * * * *
At his second tap the door opened and the Cardinal came out,
taking him by the arm without a word; and together they turned
to the lift entrance.
Percy ventured to make a remark as they slid noiselessly up
towards the papal apartment.
"I am surprised at the lift, your Eminence, and the
typewriter in the audience-room."
"Why, father?"
"Why, all the rest of Rome is back in the old days."
The Cardinal looked at him, puzzled.
"Is it? I suppose it is. I never thought of that."
A Swiss guard flung back the door of the lift, saluted and
went before them along the plain flagged passage to where his
comrade stood. Then he saluted again and went back. A
Pontifical chamberlain, in all the sombre glory of purple,
black, and a Spanish ruff, peeped from the door, and made haste
to open it. It really seemed almost incredible that such things
still existed.
"In a moment, your Eminence," he said in Latin. "Will your
Eminence wait here?"
It was a little square room, with half-a-dozen doors, plainly
contrived out of one of the huge old halls, for it was
immensely high, and the tarnished gilt cornice vanished
directly in two places into the white walls. The partitions,
too, seemed thin; for as the two men sat down there was a
murmur of voices faintly audible, the shuffling of footsteps,
and the old eternal click of the typewriter from which Percy
hoped he had escaped. They were alone in the room, which was
furnished with the same simplicity as the Cardinal's--giving
the impression of a curious mingling of ascetic poverty and
dignity by its red-tiled floor, its white walls, its altar and
two vast bronze candlesticks of incalculable value that stood
on the dais. The shutters here, too, were drawn; and there was
nothing to distract Percy from the excitement that surged up
now tenfold in heart and brain.
It was Papa Angelicus whom he was about to see; that amazing
old man who had been appointed Secretary of State just fifty
years ago, at the age of thirty, and Pope nine years previously.
It was he who had carried out the extraordinary policy of
yielding the churches throughout the whole of Italy to the
Government, in exchange for the temporal lordship of Rome, and
who had since set himself to make it a city of saints. He had
cared, it appeared, nothing whatever for the world's opinion;
his policy, so far as it could be called one, consisted in a very
simple thing: he had declared in Epistle after Epistle that the
object of the Church was to do glory to God by producing
supernatural virtues in man, and that nothing at all was of any
significance or importance except so far as it effected this
object. He had further maintained that since Peter was the
Rock, the City of Peter was the Capital of the world, and should
set an example to its dependency: this could not be done unless
Peter ruled his City, and therefore he had sacrificed every
church and ecclesiastical building in the country for that one
end. Then he had set about ruling his city: he had said that on
the whole the latter-day discoveries of man tended to distract
immortal souls from a contemplation of eternal verities--not
that these discoveries could be anything but good in
themselves, since after all they gave insight into the wonderful
laws of God--but that at present they were too exciting to the
imagination. So he had removed the trams, the volors, the
laboratories, the manufactories--saying that there was plenty
of room for them outside Rome--and had allowed them to be
planted in the suburbs: in their place he had raised shrines,
religious houses and Calvaries. Then he had attended further to
the souls of his subjects. Since Rome was of limited area, and,
still more because the world corrupted without its proper salt,
he allowed no man under the age of fifty to live within its
walls for more than one month in each year, except those who
received his permit. They might live, of course, immediately
outside the city (and they did, by tens of thousands), but they
were to understand that by doing so they sinned against the
spirit, though not the letter, of their Father's wishes. Then he
had divided the city into national quarters, saying that as each
nation had its peculiar virtues, each was to let its light shine
steadily in its proper place. Rents had instantly begun to rise,
so he had legislated against that by reserving in each quarter a
number of streets at fixed prices, and had issued an ipso facto
excommunication against all who erred in this respect. The
rest were abandoned to the millionaires. He had retained the
Leonine City entirely at his own disposal. Then he had restored
Capital Punishment, with as much serene gravity as that with
which he had made himself the derision of the civilised world
in other matters, saying that though human life was holy,
human virtue was more holy still; and he had added to the
crime of murder, the crimes of adultery, idolatry and apostasy,
for which this punishment was theoretically sanctioned. There
had not been, however, more than two such executions in the
eight years of his reign, since criminals, of course, with the
exception of devoted believers, instantly made their way to the
suburbs, where they were no longer under his jurisdiction.
But he had not stayed here. He had sent once more
ambassadors to every country in the world, informing the
Government of each of their arrival. No attention was paid to
this, beyond that of laughter; but he had continued,
undisturbed, to claim his rights, and, meanwhile, used his
legates for the important work of disseminating his views.
Epistles appeared from time to time in every town, laying down
the principles of the papal claims with as much tranquillity as
if they were everywhere acknowledged. Freemasonry was steadily
denounced, as well as democratic ideas of every kind; men were
urged to remember their immortal souls and the Majesty of
God, and to reflect upon the fact that in a few years all would
be called to give their account to Him Who was Creator and
Ruler of the world, Whose Vicar was John XXIV, P.P., whose name
and seal were appended.
That was a line of action that took the world completely by
surprise. People had expected hysteria, argument, and
passionate exhortation; disguised emissaries, plots, and
protests. There were none of these. It was as if progress had
not yet begun, and volors were uninvented, as if the entire
universe had not come to disbelieve in God, and to discover
that itself was God. Here was this silly old man, talking in his
sleep, babbling of the Cross, and the inner life and the
forgiveness of sins, exactly as his predecessors had talked two
thousand years before. Well, it was only one sign more that
Rome had lost not only its power, but its commonsense as well.
It was really time that something should be done.
* * * * * *
And this was the man, thought Percy, Papa Angelicus, whom he
was to see in a minute or two.
The Cardinal put his hand on the priest's knee as the door
opened, and a purple prelate appeared, bowing.
"Only this," he said. "Be absolutely frank."
Percy stood up, trembling. Then he followed his patron
towards the inner door.
(IV)
A white figure sat in the green gloom, beside a great writing-
table, three or four yards away, but with the chair wheeled
round to face the door by which the two entered. So much Percy
saw as he performed the first genuflection. Then he dropped his
eyes, advanced, genuflected again with the other, advanced once
more, and for the third time genuflected, lifting the thin white
hand, stretched out, to his lips. He heard the door close as he
stood up.
"Father Franklin, Holiness," said the Cardinal's voice at his
ear.
A white-sleeved arm waved to a couple of chairs set a yard
away, and the two sat down.
* * * * * *
While the Cardinal, talking in slow Latin, said a few
sentences, explaining that this was the English priest whose
correspondence had been found so useful, Percy began to look
with all his eyes.
He knew the Pope's face well, from a hundred photographs and
moving pictures; even his gestures were familiar to him, the
slight bowing of the head in assent, the tiny eloquent
movement of the hands; but Percy, with a sense of being
platitudinal, told himself that the living presence was very
different.
It was a very upright old man that he saw in the chair before
him, of medium height and girth, with hands clasping the bosses
of his chair-arms, and an appearance of great and deliberate
dignity. But it was at the face chiefly that he looked, dropping
his gaze three or four times, as the Pope's blue eyes turned on
him. They were extraordinary eyes, reminding him of what
historians said of Pius X; the lids drew straight lines across
them, giving him the look of a hawk, but the rest of the face
contradicted them. There was no sharpness in that. It was
neither thin nor fat, but beautifully modelled in an oval
outline: the lips were clean-cut, with a look of passion in
their curves; the nose came down in an aquiline sweep, ending in
chiselled nostrils; the chin was firm and cloven, and the poise
of the whole head was strangely youthful. It was a face of great
generosity and sweetness, set at an angle between defiance and
humility, but ecclesiastical from ear to ear and brow to chin;
the forehead was slightly compressed at the temples, and
beneath the white cap lay white hair. It had been the subject of
laughter at the music-halls nine years before, when the
composite face of well-known priests had been thrown on a
screen, side by side with the new Pope's, for the two were
almost indistinguishable.
Percy found himself trying to sum it up, but nothing came to
him except the word "priest." It was that, and that was all.
Ecce sacerdos magnus! He was astonished at the look of youth,
for the Pope was eighty-eight this year; yet his figure was as
upright as that of a man of fifty, his shoulders unbowed, his
head set on them like an athlete's, and his wrinkles scarcely
perceptible in the half light. Papa Angelicus! reflected Percy.
The Cardinal ceased his explanations, and made a little
gesture. Percy drew up all his faculties tense and tight to
answer the questions that he knew were coming.
"I welcome you, my son," said a very soft, resonant voice.
Percy bowed, desperately, from the waist.
The Pope dropped his eyes again, lifted a paper-weight with
his left hand, and began to play with it gently as he talked.
"Now, my son, deliver a little discourse. I suggest to you
three heads--what has happened, what is happening, what will
happen, with a peroration as to what should happen."
Percy drew a long breath, settled himself back, clasped the
fingers of his left hand in the fingers of his right, fixed his
eyes firmly upon the cross-embroidered red shoe opposite, and
began. (Had he not rehearsed this a hundred times!)
* * * * * *
He first stated his theme; to the effect that all the forces
of the civilised world were concentrating into two camps--the
world and God. Up to the present time the forces of the world
had been incoherent and spasmodic, breaking out in various ways
--revolutions and wars had been like the movements of a mob,
undisciplined, unskilled, and unrestrained. To meet this, the
Church, too, had acted through her Catholicity--dispersion
rather than concentration: franc-tireurs had been opposed to
franc-tireurs. But during the last hundred years there had been
indications that the method of warfare was to change. Europe,
at any rate, had grown weary of internal strife; the unions first
of Labour, then of Capital, then of Labour and Capital combined,
illustrated this in the economic sphere; the peaceful partition
of Africa, in the political sphere; the spread of Humanitarian
religion in the spiritual sphere. Over against this must be
placed the increased centralisation of the Church. By the
wisdom of her pontiffs, over-ruled by God Almighty, the lines
had been drawing tighter every year. He instanced the abolition
of all local usages, including those so long cherished by the
East, the establishment of the Cardinal-Protectorates in Rome,
the enforced merging of all friars into one Order, though
retaining their familiar names, under the authority of the
supreme General; all monks, with the exception of the
Carthusians, the Carmelites and the Trappists, into another; of
the three excepted into a third: and the classification of nuns
after the same plan. Further, he remarked on the more recent
decrees, establishing the sense of the Vatican decision on
infallibility, the new version of Canon Law, the immense
simplification that had taken place in ecclesiastical
government, the hierarchy, rubrics and the affairs of
missionary countries, with the new and extraordinary privileges
granted to mission priests. At this point he became aware that
his self-consciousness had left him, and he began, even with
little gestures, and a slightly raised voice, to enlarge on the
significance of the last month's events.
All that had gone before, he said, pointed to what had now
actually taken place--namely, the reconciliation of the world
on a basis other than that of Divine Truth. It was the intention
of God and of His Vicars to reconcile all men in Christ Jesus;
but the corner-stone had once more been rejected, and instead
of the chaos that the pious had prophesied, there was coming
into existence a unity unlike anything known in history. This
was the more deadly from the fact that it contained so many
elements of indubitable good. War, apparently, was now extinct,
and it was not Christianity that had done it; union was now seen
to be better than disunion, and the lesson had been learnt
apart from the Church. In fact, natural virtues had suddenly
waxed luxuriant, and supernatural virtues were despised.
Friendliness took the place of charity, contentment the place
of hope, and knowledge the place of faith.
Percy stopped, he had become conscious that he was preaching
a kind of sermon.
"Yes, my son," said the kind voice. "What else?"
What else? . . . Very well, continued Percy, movements such
as these brought forth men, and the Man of this movement was
Julian Felsenburgh. He had accomplished a work that--apart
from God--seemed miraculous. He had broken down the eternal
division between East and West, coming himself from the
continent that alone could produce such powers; he had
prevailed by sheer force of personality over the two supreme
tyrants of life--religious fanaticism and party government. His
influence over the impassive English was another miracle, yet
he had also set on fire France, Germany, and Spain. Percy here
described one or two of his little scenes, saying that it was
like the vision of a god: and he quoted freely some of the
titles given to the Man by sober, unhysterical newspapers.
Felsenburgh was called the Son of Man, because he was so pure-
bred a cosmopolitan; the Saviour of the World, because he had
slain war and himself survived--even--even--here Percy's voice
faltered--even Incarnate God, because he was the perfect
representative of divine man.
The quiet, priestly face watching opposite never winced or
moved; and he went on.
Persecution, he said, was coming. There had been a riot or
two already. But persecution was not to be feared. It would no
doubt cause apostasies, as it had always done, but these were
deplorable only on account of the individual apostates. On the
other hand, it would reassure the faithful, and purge out the
half-hearted. Once, in the early ages, Satan's attack had been
made on the bodily side, with whips and fire and beasts; in the
sixteenth century it had been on the intellectual side; in the
twentieth century on the springs of moral and spiritual life.
Now it seemed as if the assault was on all three planes at once.
But what was chiefly to be feared was the positive influence of
Humanitarianism: it was coming, like the kingdom of God, with
power; it was crushing the imaginative and the romantic, it was
assuming rather than asserting its own truth; it was
smothering with bolsters instead of wounding and stimulating
with steel or controversy. It seemed to be forcing its way,
almost objectively, into the inner world. Persons who had
scarcely heard its name were professing its tenets; priests
absorbed it, as they absorbed God in Communion--he mentioned
the names of the recent apostates--children drank it in like
Christianity itself. The soul "naturally Christian" seemed to be
becoming the soul "naturally infidel." Persecution, cried the
priest, was to be welcomed like salvation, prayed for, and
grasped; but he feared that the authorities were too shrewd, and
knew the antidote and the poison apart. There might be
individual martyrdoms--in fact there would be, and very many--
but they would be in spite of secular government, not because
of it. Finally, he expected, Humanitarianism would presently
put on the dress of liturgy and sacrifice, and when that was
done, the Church's cause, unless God intervened, would be over.
Percy sat back, trembling.
"Yes, my son. And what do you think should be done?"
Percy flung out his hands.
"Holy Father--the mass prayer, the rosary. These first and
last. The world denies their power: it is on their power that
Christians must throw all their weight. All things in Jesus
Christ--in Jesus Christ, first and last. Nothing else can avail.
He must do all, for we can do nothing."
The white head bowed. Then it rose erect.
"Yes, my son. . . . But so long as Jesus Christ deigns to use
us, we must be used. He is Prophet and King as well as Priest.
We then, too, must be prophet and king as well as priest. What
of Prophecy and Royalty?"
The voice thrilled Percy like a trumpet.
"Yes, Holiness . . . For prophecy, then, let us preach charity;
for Royalty, let us reign on crosses. We must love and
suffer. . . ." (He drew one sobbing breath.) "Your Holiness has
preached charity always. Let charity then issue in good deeds.
Let us be foremost in them; let us engage in trade honestly, in
family life chastely, in government uprightly. And as for
suffering--ah! Holiness!"
His old scheme leaped back to his mind, and stood poised
there convincing and imperious.
"Yes, my son, speak plainly."
"Your Holiness--it is old--old as Rome--every fool has
desired it: a new Order, Holiness--a new Order," he stammered.
The white hand dropped the paper-weight; the Pope leaned
forward, looking intently at the priest.
"Yes, my son?"
Percy threw himself on his knees.
"A new Order, Holiness--no habit or badge--subject to your
Holiness only--freer than Jesuits, poorer than Franciscans,
more mortified than Carthusians: men and women alike--the
three vows with the intention of martyrdom; the Pantheon for
their Church; each bishop responsible for their sustenance; a
lieutenant in each country. . . . (Holiness, it is the thought of
a fool). . . . And Christ Crucified for their patron."
The Pope stood up abruptly--so abruptly that Cardinal Martin
sprang up too, apprehensive and terrified. It seemed that this
young man had gone too far.
Then the Pope sat down again, extending his hand.
"God bless you, my son. You have leave to go. . . . Will your
Eminence stay for a few minutes?"
THE Cardinal said very little to Percy when they met again that
evening, beyond congratulating him on the way he had borne
himself with the Pope. It seemed that the priest had done right
by his extreme frankness. Then he told him of his duties.
Percy was to retain the couple of rooms that had been put at
his disposal; he was to say mass, as a rule, in the Cardinal's
oratory; and after that, at nine, he was to present himself for
instructions: he was to dine at noon with the Cardinal, after
which he was to consider himself at liberty till Ave Maria:
then, once more he was to be at his master's disposal until
supper. The work he would principally have to do would be the
reading of all English correspondence, and the drawing up of a
report upon it.
Percy found it a very pleasant and serene life, and the sense
of home deepened every day. He had an abundance of time to
himself, which he occupied resolutely in relaxation. From eight
to nine he usually walked abroad, going sedately through the
streets with his senses passive, looking into churches, watching
the people, and gradually absorbing the strange naturalness of
life under ancient conditions. At times it appeared to him like
an historical dream; at times it seemed that there was no
other reality; that the silent, tense world of modern
civilisation was itself a phantom, and that here was the simple
naturalness of the soul's childhood back again. Even the reading
of the English correspondence did not greatly affect him, for
the stream of his mind was beginning to run clear again in this
sweet old channel; and he read, dissected, analysed and
diagnosed with a deepening tranquillity.
There was not, after all, a great deal of news. it was a kind
of lull after storm. Felsenburgh was still in retirement; he
had refused the offers made to him by France and Italy, as that
of England; and, although nothing definite was announced, it
seemed that he was confining himself at present to an
unofficial attitude. Meanwhile the Parliaments of Europe were
busy in the preliminary stages of code-revision. Nothing would
be done, it was understood, until the autumn sessions.
Life in Rome was very strange. The city had now become not
only the centre of faith but, in a sense, a microcosm of it. It
was divided into four huge quarters--Anglo-Saxon, Latin,
Teutonic and Eastern--besides Trastevere, which was occupied
almost entirely by Papal offices, seminaries, and schools.
Anglo-Saxondom occupied the south-western quarter, now
entirely covered with houses, including the Aventine, the Celian
and Testaccio. The Latins inhabited old Rome, between the
Course and the river; the Teutons the north-eastern quarter,
bounded on the south by St. Laurence's Street; and the Easterns
the remaining quarter, of which the centre was the Lateran. In
this manner the true Romans were scarcely conscious of
intrusion; they possessed a multitude of their own churches,
they were allowed to revel in narrow, dark streets and hold
their markets; and it was here that Percy usually walked, in a
passion of historical retrospect. But the other quarters were
strange enough, too. It was curious to see how a progeny of
Gothic churches, served by northern priests, had grown up
naturally in the Anglo-Saxon and Teutonic districts, and how
the wide, grey streets, the neat pavements, the severe houses,
showed how the northerns had not yet realised the requirements
of southern life. The Easterns, on the other hand, resembled
the Latins; their streets were as narrow and dark, their smells
as overwhelming, their churches as dirty and as homely, and
their colours even more brilliant.
Outside the walls the confusion was indescribable. If the city
represented a carved miniature of the world, the suburbs
represented the same model broken into a thousand pieces,
tumbled in a bag and shot out at random. So far as the eye
could see, on all sides from the roof of the Vatican, there
stretched an endless plain of house-roofs, broken by spires,
towers, domes and chimneys, under which lived human beings of
every race beneath the sun. Here were the great manufactories,
the monster buildings of the new world, the stations, the
schools, the offices, all under secular dominion, yet surrounded
by six millions of souls who lived here for love of religion. It
was these who had despaired of modern life, tired out with
change and effort, who had fled from the new system for refuge
to the Church, but who could not obtain leave to live in the
city itself. New houses were continually springing up in all
directions. A gigantic compass, fixed by one leg in Rome, and
with a span of five miles, would, if twirled, revolve through
packed streets through its entire circle. Beyond that too houses
stretched into the indefinite distance.
But Percy did not realise the significance of all that he saw,
until the occasion of the Pope's name-day towards the end of
August.
It was yet cool and early, when he followed his patron, whom
he was to serve as chaplain, along the broad passages of the
Vatican towards the room where the Pope and Cardinals were to
assemble. Through a window, as he looked out into the Piazza,
the crowd was yet more dense, if that were possible, than it had
been an hour before. The huge oval square was cobbled with
heads, through which ran a broad road, kept by papal troops for
the passage of the carriages; and up the broad ribbon, white in
the eastern light, came monstrous vehicles, a blaze of gilding
and colour and cream tint; slow cheers swelled up and died, and
through all came the rush and patter of wheels over the stones,
like the sound of a tide-swept pebbly beach.
As they waited in an ante-chamber, halted by the pressure in
front and behind--a pack of scarlet and white and purple--he
looked out again, and realised what he had known only
intellectually before, that here before his eyes was the royalty
of the old world assembled--and he began to perceive its
significance.
Round the steps of the basilica spread a great fan of coaches,
each yoked to eight horses--the white of France and Spain, the
black of Germany, Italy and Russia, and the cream-coloured of
England. Those stood out in the near half-circle, and beyond was
the sweep of the lesser powers: Greece, Norway, Sweden,
Roumania and the Balkan States. One, the Turk, was alone
wanting, he reminded himself. The emblems of some were
visible--eagles, lions, leopards--guarding the royal crown above
the roof of each. From the foot of the steps to the head ran a
broad scarlet carpet, lined with soldiers.
Percy leaned against the shutter, and began to meditate.
Here was all that was left of Royalty. He had seen their
palaces before, here and there in the various quarters, with
standards flying, and scarlet-liveried men lounging on the
steps. He had raised his hat a dozen times as a landau thundered
past him up the Course; he had even seen the lilies of France
and the leopards of England pass together in the solemn parade
of the Pincian Hill. He had read in the papers every now and
again during the last five years that family after family had
made its way to Rome, after papal recognition had been granted;
he had been told by the Cardinal on the previous evening that
William of England, with his Consort, had landed at Ostia in the
morning and that the tale of the Powers was complete. But he
had never before realised the stupendous, overwhelming fact of
the assembly of the world's royalty under the shadow of Peter's
Throne, nor the appalling danger that its presence constituted
in the midst of a democratic world. That world, he knew,
affected to laugh at the folly and the childishness of it all--
at the desperate play-acting of Divine Right on the part of
fallen and despised families; but the same world, he knew very
well, had not yet lost quite all its sentiment; and if that
sentiment should happen to become resentful----
The pressure relaxed; Percy slipped out of the recess, and
followed in the slow-moving stream.
Half-an-hour later he was in his place among the
ecclesiastics, as the papal procession came out through the
glimmering dusk of the chapel of the Blessed Sacrament into
the nave of the enormous church; but even before he had entered
the chapel he heard the quiet roar of recognition and the cry of
the trumpets that greeted the Supreme Pontiff as he came out,
a hundred yards ahead, borne on the sedia gestatoria, with the
fans going behind him. When Percy himself came out, five
minutes later, walking in his quaternion, and saw the sight that
was waiting, he remembered with a sudden throb at his heart
that other sight he had seen in London in a summer dawn three
months before. . . .
Far ahead, seeming to cleave its way through the surging
heads, like the poop of an ancient ship, moved the canopy
beneath which sat the Lord of the world, and between him and
the priest, as if it were the wake of that same ship, swayed the
gorgeous procession--Protonotaries Apostolic, Generals of
Religious Orders and the rest--making its way along with white,
gold, scarlet and silver foam between the living banks on
either side. Overhead hung the splendid barrel of the roof, and
far in front the haven of God's altar reared its monstrous
pillars, beneath which burned the seven yellow stars that were
the harbour lights of sanctity. It was an astonishing sight, but
too vast and bewildering to do anything but oppress the
observers with a consciousness of their own futility. The
enormous enclosed air, the giant statues, the dim and distant
roofs, the indescribable concert of sound--of the movement of
feet, the murmur of ten thousand voices, the peal of organs
like the crying of gnats, the thin celestial music--the faint
suggestive smell of incense and men and bruised bay and myrtle
--and, supreme above all, the vibrant atmosphere of human
emotion, shot with supernatural aspiration, as the Hope of the
World, the holder of Divine Vice-Royalty, passed on his way to
stand between God and man--this affected the priest as the
action of a drug that at once lulls and stimulates, that blinds
while it gives new vision, that deafens while it opens stopped
ears, that exalts while it plunges into new gulfs of
consciousness. Here, then, was the other formulated answer to
the problem of life. The two Cities of Augustine lay for him to
choose. The one was that of a world self-originated, self-
organised and self sufficient, interpreted by such men as Marx
and Hervé, socialists, materialists, and, in the end, hedonists,
summed up at last in Felsenburgh. The other lay displayed in
the sight he saw before him, telling of a Creator and of a
creation, of a Divine purpose, a redemption, and a world
transcendent and eternal from which all sprang and to which
all moved. One of the two, John and Julian, was the Vicar, and
the other the Ape, of God. . . . And Percy's heart in one more
spasm of conviction made its choice. . . .
But the summit was not yet reached.
As Percy came at last out from the nave beneath the dome,
on his way to the tribune beyond the papal throne, he became
aware of a new element.
A great space was cleared about the altar and confession,
extending, as he could see at least on his side, to the point
that marked the entrance to the transepts; at this point ran
rails straight across from side to side, continuing the lines of
the nave. Beyond this red-hung barrier lay a gradual slope of
faces, white and motionless; a glimmer of steel bounded it, and
above, a third of the distance down the transept, rose in
solemn serried array a line of canopies. These were of scarlet,
like cardinalitial baldachini, but upon the upright surface of
each burned gigantic coats supported by beasts and topped by
crowns. Under each was a figure or two--no more--in splendid
isolation, and through the interspaces between the thrones
showed again a misty slope of faces.
His heart quickened as he saw it--as he swept his eyes round
and across to the right and saw as in a mirror the replica of
the left in the right transept. It was there then that they sat
--those lonely survivors of that strange company of persons
who, till half-a-century ago, had reigned as God's temporal
Vice-gerents with the consent of their subjects. They were
unrecognised, now, save by Him from whom they drew their
sovereignty--pinnacles clustering and hanging from a dome,
from which the walls had been withdrawn. These were men and
women who had learnt at last that power comes from above, and
their title to rule came not from their subjects but from the
Supreme Ruler of all--shepherds without sheep, captains
without soldiers to command. It was piteous--horribly piteous,
yet inspiring. The act of faith was so sublime; and Percy's
heart quickened as he understood it. These, then, men and women
like himself, were not ashamed to appeal from man to God, to
assume insignia which the world regarded as playthings, but
which to them were emblems of supernatural commission. Was
there not mirrored here, he asked himself, some far-off shadow
of One Who rode on the colt of an ass amid the sneers of the
great and the enthusiasm of children? . . .
* * * * * *
It was yet more kindling as the mass went on, and he saw the
male sovereigns come down to do their services at the altar,
and to go to and fro between it and the Throne. There they went
bare-headed, the stately silent figures. The English king, once
again Fidei Defensor, bore the train in place of the old king of
Spain, who, with the Austrian Emperor, alone of all European
sovereigns, had preserved the unbroken continuity of faith. The
old man leaned over his fald-stool, mumbling and weeping, even
crying out now and again in love and devotion, as, like Simeon,
he saw his Salvation. The Austrian Emperor twice administered
the Lavabo; the German sovereign, who had lost his throne and
all but his life upon his conversion four years before, by a new
privilege placed and withdrew the cushion, as his Lord kneeled
before the Lord of them both. So movement by movement the
gorgeous drama was enacted; the murmuring of the crowds died
to a stillness that was but one wordless prayer as the tiny
White Disc rose between the white hands, and the thin angelic
music pealed in the dome. For here was the one hope of these
thousands, as mighty and as little as once within the Manger.
There was none other that fought for them but only God. Surely
then, if the blood of men and the tears of women could not
avail to move the Judge and Observer of all from His silence,
surely at least here the bloodless Death of His only Son, that
once on Calvary had darkened heaven and rent the earth, pleaded
now with such sorrowful splendour upon this island of faith
amid a sea of laughter and hatred--this at least must avail!
How could it not?
* * * * * *
Percy had just sat down, tired out with the long ceremonies,
when the door opened abruptly, and the Cardinal, still in his
robes, came in swiftly, shutting the door behind him.
"Father Franklin," he said, in a strange breathless voice,
"there is the worst of news. Felsenburgh is appointed President
of Europe."
(II)
It was late that night before Percy returned, completely
exhausted by his labours. For hour after hour he had sat with
the Cardinal, opening despatches that poured into the electric
receivers from all over Europe, and were brought in one by one
into the quiet sitting-room. Three times in the afternoon the
Cardinal had been sent for, once by the Pope and twice to the
Quirinal.
There was no doubt at all that the news was true; and it
seemed that Felsenburgh must have waited deliberately for the
offer. All others he had refused. There had been a Convention of
the Powers, each of whom had been anxious to secure him, and
each of whom had severally failed; these private claims had
been withdrawn, and an united message sent. The new proposal
was to the effect that Felsenburgh should assume a position
hitherto undreamed of in democracy; that he should receive a
House of Government in every capital of Europe; that his veto
of any measure should be final for three years; that any
measure he chose to introduce three times in three consecutive
years should become law; that his title should be that of
President of Europe. From his side practically nothing was
asked, except that he should refuse any other official position
offered him that did not receive the sanction of all the Powers.
And all this, Percy saw very well, involved the danger of an
united Europe increased tenfold. It involved all the stupendous
force of Socialism directed by a brilliant individual. It was
the combination of the strongest characteristics of the two
methods of government. The offer had been accepted by
Felsenburgh after eight hours' silence.
It was remarkable, too, to observe how the news had been
accepted by the two other divisions of the world. The East was
enthusiastic; America was divided. But in any case America was
powerless: the balance of the world was overwhelmingly against
her.
Percy threw himself, as he was, on to his bed, and lay there
with drumming pulses, closed eyes and a huge despair at his
heart. The world indeed had risen like a giant over the horizons
of Rome, and the holy city was no better now than a sand castle
before a tide. So much he grasped. As to how ruin would come,
in what form and from what direction, he neither knew nor
cared. Only he knew now that it would come.
He had learnt by now something of his own temperament; and
he turned his eyes inwards to observe himself bitterly, as a
doctor in mortal disease might with a dreadful complacency
diagnose his own symptoms. It was even a relief to turn from
the monstrous mechanism of the world to see in miniature one
hopeless human heart. For his own religion he no longer feared;
he knew, as absolutely as a man may know the colour of his
eyes, that it was secure again and beyond shaking. During those
weeks in Rome the cloudy deposit had run clear and the channel
was once more visible. Or, better still, that vast erection of
dogma, ceremony, custom and morals in which he had been
educated, and on which he had looked all his life (as a man may
stare upon some great set-piece that bewilders him), seeing now
one spark of light, now another, flare and wane in the darkness,
had little by little kindled and revealed itself in one
stupendous blaze of divine fire that explains itself. Huge
principles, once bewildering and even repellent, were again
luminously self-evident; he saw, for example, that while
Humanity-Religion endeavoured to abolish suffering the Divine
Religion embraced it, so that the blind pangs even of beasts
were within the Father's Will and Scheme; or that while from
one angle one colour only of the web of life was visible--
material, or intellectual, or artistic--from another the
Supernatural was as eminently obvious. Humanity-Religion could
only be true if at least half of man's nature, aspirations and
sorrows were ignored. Christianity, on the other hand, at least
included and accounted for these, even if it did not explain
them. This . . . and this . . . and this . . . all made the one
and perfect whole. There was the Catholic Faith, more certain
to him than the existence of himself: it was true and alive. He
might be damned, but God reigned. He might go mad, but Jesus
Christ was Incarnate Deity, proving Himself so by death and
Resurrection, and John his Vicar. These things were as the
bones of the Universe--facts beyond doubting--if they were not
true, nothing anywhere was anything but a dream.
Difficulties?--Why, there were ten thousand. He did not in the
least understand why God had made the world as it was, nor how
Hell could be the creation of Love, nor how bread was
transubstantiated into the Body of God--but--well, these things
were so. He had travelled far, he began to see, from his old
status of faith, when he had believed that divine truth could be
demonstrated on intellectual grounds. He had learnt now (he
knew not how), that the supernatural cried to the supernatural;
the Christ without to the Christ within; that pure human reason
indeed could not contradict, yet neither could it adequately
prove the mysteries of faith, except on premisses visible only
to him who receives Revelation as a fact, that it is the moral
state, rather than the intellectual, to which the Spirit of God
speaks with the greater certitude. That which he had both
learned and taught he now knew, that Faith, having, like man
himself, a body and a spirit--an historical expression and an
inner verity--speaks now by one, now by another. This man
believes because he sees--accepts the Incarnation or the Church
from its credentials; that man, perceiving that these things
are spiritual facts, yields himself wholly to the message and
authority of her who alone professes them, as well as to the
manifestation of them upon the historical plane; and in the
darkness leans upon her arm. Or, best of all, because he has
believed, now he sees.
So he looked with a kind of interested indolence at other
tracts of his nature.
First, there was his intellect, puzzled beyond description,
demanding, Why, why, why? Why was it allowed? How was it
conceivable that God did not intervene, and that the Father of
men could permit His dear world to be so ranged against Him?
What did He mean to do? Was this eternal silence never to be
broken? It was very well for those that had the Faith, but what
of the countless millions who were settling down in contented
blasphemy? Were these not, too, His children and the sheep of
His pasture? What was the Catholic Church made for if not to
convert the world, and why then had Almighty God allowed it, on
the one side, to dwindle to a handful, and, on the other, the
world to find its peace apart from Him?
He considered his emotions, but there was no comfort there,
no stimulus. Oh! yes; he could pray still, by mere cold acts of
the will, and his theology told him that God accepted such. He
could say "Adveniat regnum tuum. . . . Fiat voluntas tua," five
thousand times a day, if God wanted that; but there was no sting
or touch, no sense of vibration through the cords that his will
threw up to the Heavenly Throne. What in the world then did God
want him to do? Was it just then to repeat formulas, to lie
still, to open despatches, to listen through the telephone, and
to suffer?
And then the rest of the world--the madness that had seized
upon the nations; the amazing stories that had poured in that
day of the men in Paris, who, raving like Bacchantes, had
stripped themselves naked in the Place de Concorde, and stabbed
themselves to the heart, crying out to thunders of applause
that life was too enthralling to be endured; of the woman who
sang herself mad last night in Spain, and fell laughing and
foaming in the concert hall at Seville; of the crucifixion of
the Catholics that morning in the Pyrenees, and the apostasy of
three bishops in Germany. . . . And this . . . and this . . . and
a thousand more horrors were permitted, and God made no sign
and spoke no word. . . .
There was a tap, and Percy sprang up as the Cardinal came in.
* * * * * *
He looked horribly worn; and his eyes had a kind of sunken
brilliance that revealed fever. He made a little motion to
Percy to sit down, and himself sat in the deep chair, trembling
a little, and gathering his buckled feet beneath his red-
buttoned cassock.
"You must forgive me, father," he said. "I am anxious for the
Bishop's safety. He should be here by now."
This was the Bishop of Southwark, Percy remembered, who had
left England early that morning.
"He is coming straight through, your Eminence?"
"Yes: he should have been here by twenty-three. It is after
midnight, is it not?"
As he spoke, the bells chimed out the half-hour.
It was nearly quiet now. All day the air had been full of
sound; mobs had paraded the suburbs; the gates of the City had
been barred, yet that was only an earnest of what was to be
expected when the world understood itself.
The Cardinal seemed to recover himself after a few minutes'
silence.
"You look tired out, father," he said kindly.
Percy smiled.
"And your Eminence?" he said.
The old man smiled too.
"Why, yes," he said. "I shall not last much longer, father.
And then it will be you to suffer."
Percy sat up, suddenly, sick at heart.
"Why, yes," said the Cardinal. "The Holy Father has arranged
it. You are to succeed me, you know. It need be no secret."
Percy drew a long trembling breath.
"Eminence," he began piteously.
The other lifted a thin old hand.
"I understand all that," he said softly. "You wish to die, is
it not so?--and be at peace. There are many who wish that. But
we must suffer first. Et pati et mori. Father Franklin, there
must be no faltering."
There was a long silence.
The news was too stunning to convey anything to the priest
but a sense of horrible shock. The thought had simply never
entered his mind that he, a man under forty, should be
considered eligible to succeed this wise, patient old prelate. As
for the honour--Percy was past that now, even had he thought of
it. There was but one view before him--of a long and
intolerable journey, on a road that went uphill, to be traversed
with a burden on his shoulders that he could not support.
Yet he recognised its inevitability. The fact was announced
to him as indisputable; it was to be; there was nothing to be
said. But it was as if one more gulf had opened, and he stared
into it with a dull, sick horror, incapable of expression.
The Cardinal first broke the silence.
"Father Franklin," he said, "I have seen to-day a picture of
Felsenburgh. Do you know whom I at first took it for?"
Percy smiled listlessly.
"Yes, father, I took it for you. Now, what do you make of
that?"
"I don't understand, Eminence."
"Why----" He broke off, suddenly changing the subject.
"There was a murder in the City to-day," he said. "A Catholic
stabbed a blasphemer."
Percy glanced at him again.
"Oh! yes; he has not attempted to escape," went on the old
man. "He is in jail."
"And----"
"He will be executed. The trial will begin to-morrow. . . . It
is sad enough. It is the first murder for eight months."
The irony of the position was evident enough to Percy as he
sat listening to the deepening silence outside in the starlit
night. Here was this poor city pretending that nothing was the
matter, quietly administering its derided justice; and there,
outside, were the forces gathering that would put an end to all.
His enthusiasm seemed dead. There was no thrill from the
thought of the splendid disregard of material facts of which
this was one tiny instance, none of despairing courage or
drunken recklessness. He felt like one who watches a fly washing
his face on the cylinder of an engine--the huge steel slides
along bearing the tiny life towards enormous death--another
moment and it will be over; and yet the watcher cannot
interfere. The supernatural thus lay, perfect and alive, but
immeasurably tiny; the huge forces were in motion, the world
was heaving up, and Percy could do nothing but stare and frown.
Yet, as has been said, there was no shadow on his faith; the fly
he knew was greater than the engine from the superiority of its
order of life; if it were crushed, life would not be the final
sufferer; so much he knew, but how it was so, he did not know.
As the two sat there, again came a step and a tap; and a
servant's face looked in.
"His Lordship is come, Eminence," he said.
The Cardinal rose painfully, supporting himself by the table.
Then he paused, seeming to remember something, and fumbled in
his pocket.
"See that, father," he said, and pushed a small silver disc
towards the priest. "No; when I am gone."
Percy closed the door and came back, taking up the little
round object.
It was a coin, fresh from the mint. On one side was the
familiar wreath with the word "fivepence" in the midst, with
its Esperanto equivalent beneath, and on the other the profile
of a man, with an inscription. Percy turned it to read:
"JULIAN FELSENBURGH, LA PREZIDANTE DE UROPO."
(III)
It was at ten o'clock on the following morning that the
Cardinals were summoned to the Pope's presence to hear the
allocution.
Percy, from his seat among the Consultors, watched them
come in, men of every nation and temperament and age--the
Italians all together, gesticulating, and flashing teeth; the
Anglo-Saxons steady-faced and serious; an old French Cardinal
leaning on his stick, walking with the English Benedictine. It
was one of the great plain stately rooms of which the Vatican
now chiefly consisted, seated lengthwise like a chapel. At the
lower end, traversed by the gangway, were the seats of the
Consultors; at the upper end, the dais with the papal throne.
Three or four benches with desks before them, standing out
beyond the Consultors' seats, were reserved for the arrivals of
the day before--prelates and priests who had poured into Rome
from every European country on the announcement of the
amazing news.
Percy had not an idea as to what would be said. It was
scarcely possible that nothing but platitudes would be uttered,
yet what else could be said in view of the complete
doubtfulness of the situation? All that was known even this
morning was that the Presidentship of Europe was a fact; the
little silver coin he had seen witnessed to that; that there had
been an outburst of persecution, repressed sternly by local
authorities; and that Felsenburgh was to-day to begin his tour
from capital to capital. He was expected in Turin by the end of
the week. From every Catholic centre throughout the world had
come in messages imploring guidance; it was said that apostasy
was rising like a tidal wave, that persecution threatened
everywhere, and that even bishops were beginning to yield.
As for the Holy Father, all was doubtful. Those who knew,
said nothing; and the only rumour that escaped was to the
effect that he had spent all night in prayer at the tomb of the
Apostle. . . .
The murmur died suddenly to a rustle and a silence; there
was a ripple of sinking heads along the seats as the door beside
the canopy opened, and a moment later John, Pater Patrum, was
on his throne.
* * * * * *
At first Percy understood nothing. He stared only, as at a
picture, through the dusty sunlight that poured in through the
shrouded windows, at the scarlet lines to right and left, up to
the huge scarlet canopy, and the white figure that sat there.
Certainly, these southerners understood the power of effect. It
was as vivid and impressive as a vision of the Host in a
jewelled monstrance. Every accessory was gorgeous, the high
room, the colour of the robes, the chains and crosses, and, as
the eye moved along to its climax it was met by a piece of dead
white--as if glory was exhausted and declared itself impotent
to tell the supreme secret. Scarlet and purple and gold were
well enough for those who stood on the steps of the throne--
they needed it; but for Him who sat there nothing was needed.
Let colours die and sounds faint in the presence of God's
Viceroy. Yet what expression was required found itself
adequately provided in that beautiful oval face, the poised
imperious head, the sweet brilliant eyes and the clean-curved
lips that spoke so strongly. There was not a sound in the room,
not a rustle, nor a breathing--even without it seemed as if the
world were allowing the supernatural to state its defence
uninterruptedly, before summing up and clamouring
condemnation.
* * * * * *
Percy made a violent effort at self-repression, clenched his
hands and listened.
". . . Since this then is so, sons in Jesus Christ, it is for us
to answer. We wrestle not, as the Doctor of the Gentiles teaches
us, against flesh and blood, but against principalities and
powers, against the rulers of the world of this darkness,
against the spirits of wickedness in the high places. Wherefore,
he continues, take unto you the armour of God; and he further
declares to us its nature--the girdle of truth, the breastplate
of justice, the shoes of Peace, the shield of faith, the helmet
of salvation, and the sword of the Spirit.
"By this, therefore, the Word of God bids us to war, but not
with the weapons of this world, for neither is His kingdom of
this world; and it is to remind you of the principles of this
warfare that we have summoned you to Our Presence."
The voice paused, and there was a rustling sigh along the
seats. Then the voice continued on a slightly higher note.
"It has ever been the wisdom of Our predecessors, as is also
their duty, while keeping silence at certain seasons, at others
to speak freely the whole counsel of God. From this duty We
Ourself must not be deterred by the knowledge of Our own
weakness and ignorance, but to trust rather that He Who has
placed Us on this throne will deign to speak through Our mouth
and use Our words to His glory.
"First, then, it is necessary to utter Our sentence as to the
new movement, as men call it, which has latterly been
inaugurated by the rulers of this world.
"We are not unmindful of the blessings of peace and unity,
nor do We forget that the appearance of these things has been
the fruit of much that we have condemned. It is this appearance
of peace that has deceived many, causing them to doubt the
promise of the Prince of Peace that it is through Him alone
that we have access to the Father. That true peace, passing
understanding, concerns not only the relations of men between
themselves, but, supremely, the relations of men with their
Maker; and it is in this necessary point that the efforts of the
world are found wanting. It is not indeed to be wondered at that
in a world which has rejected God this necessary matter should
be forgotten. Men have thought--led astray by seducers--that
the unity of nations was the greatest prize of this life,
forgetting the words of our Saviour, Who said that He came to
bring not peace but a sword, and that it is through many
tribulations that we enter God's Kingdom. First, then, there
should be established the peace of man with God, and after that
the unity of man with man will follow. Seek ye first, said Jesus
Christ, the kingdom of God--and then all these things shall be
added unto you.
"First, then, We once more condemn and anathematise the
opinions of those who teach and believe the contrary of this;
and we renew once more all the condemnations uttered by
Ourself or Our predecessors against all those societies,
organisations and communities that have been formed for the
furtherance of an unity on another than a divine foundation;
and We remind Our children throughout the world that it is
forbidden to them to enter or to aid or to approve in any
manner whatsoever any of those bodies named in such
condemnations."
Percy moved in his seat, conscious of a touch of impatience.
The manner was superb, tranquil and stately as a river; but the
matter a trifle banal. Here was this old reprobation of
Freemasonry, repeated in unoriginal language.
"Secondly," went on the steady voice, "We wish to make known
to you Our desires for the future; and here We tread on what
many have considered dangerous ground."
Again came that rustle. Percy saw more than one cardinal
lean forward with hand crooked at ear to hear the better. It was
evident that something important was coming.
"There are many points," went on the high voice, "of which it
is not Our intention to speak at this time, for of their own
nature they are secret, and must be treated of on another
occasion. But what We say here, We say to the world. Since the
assaults of Our enemies are both open and secret, so too must
be Our defences. This then is Our intention."
The Pope paused again, lifted one hand as if mechanically to
his breast, and grasped the cross that hung there.
"While the army of Christ is one, it consists of many
divisions, each of which has its proper function and object. In
times past God has raised up companies of His servants to do
this or that particular work--the sons of St. Francis to preach
poverty, those of St. Bernard to labour in prayer with all holy
women dedicating themselves to this purpose, the Society of
Jesus for the education of youth and the conversion of the
heathen--together with all the other Religious Orders whose
names are known throughout the world. Each such company was
raised up at a particular season of need, and each has
corresponded nobly with the divine vocation. It has also been
the especial glory of each, for the furtherance of its intention,
while pursuing its end, to cut off from itself all such
activities (good in themselves) which would hinder that work for
which God had called it into being--following in this matter
the words of our Redeemer, Every branch that beareth fruit, He
purgeth it that it may bring forth more fruit. At this present
season, then, it appears to Our Humility that all such Orders
(which once more We commend and bless) are not perfectly
suited by the very conditions of their respective Rules to
perform the great work which the time requires. Our warfare
lies not with ignorance in particular, whether of the heathens
to whom the Gospel has not yet come, or of those whose fathers
have rejected it, nor with the deceitful riches of this world,
nor with science falsely so-called, nor indeed with any one of
those strongholds of infidelity against whom We have laboured
in the past. Rather it appears as if at last the time was come
of which the apostle spoke when he said that that day shall not
come, except there come a falling away first, and that Man of
Sin be revealed, the Son of Perdition, who opposeth and
exalteth himself above all that is called God.
"It is not with this or that force that we are concerned, but
rather with the unveiled immensity of that power whose time
was foretold, and whose destruction is prepared."
The voice paused again, and Percy gripped the rail before him
to stay the trembling of his hands. There was no rustle now,
nothing but a silence that tingled and shook. The Pope drew a
long breath, turned his head slowly to right and left, and went
on more deliberately than ever.
"It seems good, then, to Our Humility, that the Vicar of
Christ should himself invite God's children to this new warfare;
and it is Our intention to enrol under the title of the Order of
Christ Crucified the names of all who offer themselves to this
supreme service. In doing this We are aware of the novelty of
Our action, and the disregard of all such precautions as have
been necessary in the past. We take counsel in this matter with
none save Him Who we believe has inspired it.
"First, then, let Us say, that although obedient service will
be required from all who shall be admitted to this Order, Our
primary intention in instituting it lies in God's regard rather
than in man's, in appealing to Him Who asks our generosity
rather than to those who deny it, and dedicating once more by a
formal and deliberate act our souls and bodies to the heavenly
Will and service of Him Who alone can rightly claim such
offering, and will accept our poverty.
"Briefly, we dictate only the following conditions.
"None shall be capable of entering the Order except such as
shall be above the age of seventeen years.
"No badge, habit, nor insignia shall be attached to it.
"The Three Evangelical Counsels shall be the foundation of
the Rule, to which we add a fourth intention, namely, that of a
desire to receive the crown of martyrdom and a purpose of
embracing it.
"The bishop of every diocese, if he himself shall enter the
Order, shall be the superior within the limits of his own
jurisdiction, and alone shall be exempt from the literal
observance of the Vow of Poverty so long as he retains his see.
Such bishops as do not feel the vocation to the Order shall
retain their sees under the usual conditions, but shall have no
Religious claim on the members of the Order.
"Further, We announce Our intention of Ourself entering the
Order as its supreme prelate, and of making Our profession
within the course of a few days.
"Further, We declare that in Our Own pontificate none shall
be elevated to the Sacred College save those who have made
their profession in the Order; and We shall dedicate shortly the
Basilica of St. Peter and St. Paul as the central church of the
Order, in which church We shall raise to the altars without any
delay those happy souls who shall lay down their lives in the
pursuance of their vocation.
"Of that vocation it is unnecessary to speak beyond
indicating that it may be pursued under any conditions laid
down by the Superiors. As regards the novitiate, its conditions
and requirements, we shall shortly issue the necessary
directions. Each diocesan superior (for it is Our hope that none
will hold back) shall have all such rights as usually appertain
to Religious Superiors, and shall be empowered to employ his
subjects in any work that, in his opinion, shall subserve the
glory of God and the salvation of souls. It is Our Own intention
to employ in Our service none except those who shall make
their profession."
He raised his eyes once more, seemingly without emotion,
then he continued:
"So far, then, We have determined. On other matters We shall
take counsel immediately; but it is Our wish that these words
shall be communicated to all the world, that there may be no
delay in making known what it is that Christ through His Vicar
asks of all who profess the Divine Name. We offer no rewards
except those which God Himself has promised to those that love
Him, and lay down their life for Him; no promise of peace, save
of that which passeth understanding; no home save that which
befits pilgrims and sojourners who seek a City to come; no
honour save the world's contempt; no life, save that which is
hid with Christ in God."
OLIVER Brand, seated in his little private room at Whitehall,
was expecting a visitor. It was already close upon ten o'clock,
and at half-past he must be in the House. He had hoped that Mr.
Francis, whoever he might be, would not detain him long. Even
now, every moment was a respite, for the work had become
simply prodigious during the last weeks.
But he was not reprieved for more than a minute, for the
last boom from the Victoria Tower had scarcely ceased to throb
when the door opened and a clerkly voice uttered the name he
was expecting.
Oliver shot one quick look at the stranger, at his drooping
lids and down-turned mouth, summed him up fairly and
accurately in the moments during which they seated themselves,
and went briskly to business.
"At twenty-five minutes past, sir, I must leave this room,"
he said. "Until then----" he made a little gesture.
Mr. Francis reassured him.
"Thank you, Mr. Brand--that is ample time. Then, if you will
excuse me----" He groped in his breast-pocket, and drew out a
long envelope.
"I will leave this with you," he said, "when I go. It sets out
our desires at length and our names. And this is what I have to
say, sir."
He sat back, crossed his legs, and went on, with a touch of
eagerness in his voice.
"I am a kind of deputation, as you know," he said. "We have
something both to ask and to offer. I am chosen because it was
my own idea. First, may I ask a question?"
Oliver bowed.
"I wish to ask nothing that I ought not. But I believe it is
practically certain, is it not?--that Divine Worship is to be
restored throughout the kingdom?"
Oliver smiled.
"I suppose so," he said. "The bill has been read for the third
time, and, as you know, the President is to speak upon it this
evening."
"He will not veto it?"
"We suppose not. He has assented to it in Germany."
"Just so," said Mr. Francis. "And if he assents here, I
suppose it will become law immediately."
Oliver leaned over his table, and drew out the green paper
that contained the Bill.
"You have this, of course----" he said. "Well, it becomes law
at once; and the first feast will be observed on the first of
October. `Paternity,' is it not? Yes, Paternity."
"There will be something of a rush then," said the other
eagerly. "Why, that is only a week hence."
"I have not charge of this department," said Oliver, laying
back the Bill. "But I understand that the ritual will be that
already in use in Germany. There is no reason why we should be
peculiar."
"And the Abbey will be used?"
"Why, yes."
"Well, sir," said Mr. Francis, "of course I know the
Government Commission has studied it all very closely, and no
doubt has its own plans. But it appears to me that they will
want all the experience they can get."
"No doubt."
"Well, Mr. Brand, the society which I represent consists
entirely of men who were once Catholic priests. We number
about two hundred in London. I will leave a pamphlet with you,
if I may, stating our objects, our constitution, and so on. It
seemed to us that here was a matter in which our past
experience might be of service to the Government. Catholic
ceremonies, as you know, are very intricate, and some of us
studied them very deeply in old days. We used to say that
Masters of Ceremonies were born, not made, and we have a fair
number of those amongst us. But indeed every priest is
something of a ceremonialist."
He paused.
"Yes, Mr. Francis?"
"I am sure the Government realises the immense importance
of all going smoothly. If Divine Service was at all grotesque or
disorderly, it would largely defeat its own object. So I have
been deputed to see you, Mr. Brand, and to suggest to you that
here is a body of men--reckon it as at least twenty-five--who
have had special experience in this kind of thing, and are
perfectly ready to put themselves at the disposal of the
Government."
Oliver could not resist a faint flicker of a smile at the
corner of his mouth. It was a very grim bit of irony, he
thought, but it seemed sensible enough.
"I quite understand, Mr. Francis. It seems a very reasonable
suggestion. But I do not think I am the proper person. Mr.
Snowford----"
"Yes, yes, sir, I know. But your speech the other day inspired
us all. You said exactly what was in all our hearts--that the
world could not live without worship; and that now that God was
found at last----"
Oliver waved his hand. He hated even a touch of flattery.
"It is very good of you, Mr. Francis. I will certainly speak to
Mr. Snowford. I understand that you offer yourselves as--as
Masters of Ceremonies----?"
"Yes, sir; and sacristans. I have studied the German ritual
very carefully; it is more elaborate than I had thought it. It
will need a good deal of adroitness. I imagine that you will
want at least a dozen Ceremoniarii in the Abbey; and a dozen
more in the vestries will scarcely be too much."
Oliver nodded abruptly, looking curiously at the eager
pathetic face of the man opposite him; yet it had something,
too, of that mask-like priestly look that he had seen before in
others like him. This was evidently a devotee.
"You are all Masons, of course?" he said.
"Why, of course, Mr. Brand."
"Very good. I will speak to Mr. Snowford to-day if I can catch
him."
He glanced at the clock. There were yet three or four
minutes.
"You have seen the new appointment in Rome, sir," went on
Mr. Francis.
Oliver shook his head. He was not particularly interested in
Rome just now.
"Cardinal Martin is dead--he died on Tuesday--and his place
is already filled."
"Indeed, sir?"
"Yes--the new man was once a friend of mine--Franklin, his
name is--Percy Franklin."
"Eh?"
"What is the matter, Mr. Brand? Did you know him?"
Oliver was eyeing him darkly, a little pale.
"Yes; I knew him," he said quietly. "At least, I think so."
"He was at Westminster until a month or two ago."
"Yes, yes," said Oliver, still looking at him. "And you knew
him, Mr. Francis?"
"I knew him--yes."
"Ah!--well, I should like to have a talk some day about him."
He broke off. It yet wanted a minute to his time.
"And that is all?" he asked.
"That is all my actual business, sir," answered the other.
"But I hope you will allow me to say how much we all
appreciate what you have done, Mr. Brand. I do not think it is
possible for any, except ourselves, to understand what the loss
of worship means to us. It was very strange at first----"
His voice trembled a little, and he stopped. Oliver felt
interested, and checked himself in his movement to rise.
"Yes, Mr. Francis?"
The melancholy brown eyes turned on him full.
"It was an illusion, of course, sir--we know that. But I, at
any rate, dare to hope that it was not all wasted--all our
aspirations and penitence and praise. We mistook our God, but
none the less it reached Him--it found its way to the Spirit of
the World. It taught us that the individual was nothing, and
that He was all. And now----"
"Yes, sir," said the other softly. He was really touched.
The sad brown eyes opened full.
"And now Mr. Felsenburgh is come." He swallowed in his
throat. "Julian Felsenburgh!" There was a world of sudden
passion in his gentle voice, and Oliver's own heart responded.
"I know, sir," he said; "I know all that you mean."
"Oh! to have a Saviour at last!" cried Francis. "One that can
be seen and handled and praised to His Face! It is like a dream
--too good to be true!"
Oliver glanced at the clock, and rose abruptly, holding out
his hand.
"Forgive me, sir. I must not stay. You have touched me very
deeply. . . . I will speak to Snowford. Your address is here, I
understand?"
He pointed to the papers.
"Yes, Mr. Brand. There is one more question."
"I must not stay, sir," said Oliver, shaking his head.
"One instant--is it true that this worship will be
compulsory?"
Oliver bowed as he gathered up his papers.
(II)
Mabel, seated in the gallery that evening behind the
President's chair, had already glanced at her watch half-a-dozen
times in the last hour, hoping each time that twenty-one
o'clock was nearer than she feared. She knew well enough by now
that the President of Europe would not be half-a-minute either
before or after his time. His supreme punctuality was famous
all over the continent. He had said Twenty-One, so it was to be
twenty-one.
A sharp bell-note impinged from beneath, and in a moment
the drawling voice of the speaker stopped. Once more she lifted
her wrist, saw that it wanted five minutes of the hour; then she
leaned forward from her corner and stared down into the House.
A great change had passed over it at the metallic noise. All
down the long brown seats members were shifting and arranging
themselves more decorously, uncrossing their legs, slipping
their hats beneath the leather fringes. As she looked, too, she
saw the President of the House coming down the three steps
from his chair, for Another would need it in a few moments.
The house was full from end to end; a late-comer ran in from
the twilight of the south door and looked distractedly about
him in the full light before he saw his vacant place. The
galleries at the lower end were occupied too, down there, where
she had failed to obtain a seat. Yet from all the crowded
interior there was no sound but a sibilant whispering; from the
passages behind she could hear again the quick bell-note repeat
itself as the lobbies were cleared; and from Parliament Square
outside once more came the heavy murmur of the crowd that had
been inaudible for the last twenty minutes. When that ceased
she would know that he was come.
How strange and wonderful it was to be here--on this night of
all, when the President was to speak! A month ago he had
assented to a similar Bill in Germany, and had delivered a
speech on the same subject at Turin. To-morrow he was to be in
Spain. No one knew where he had been during the past week. A
rumour had spread that his volor had been seen passing over
Lake Como, and had been instantly contradicted. No one knew
either what he would say to-night. It might be three words or
twenty thousand. There were a few clauses in the Bill--notably
those bearing on the point as to when the new worship was to
be made compulsory on all subjects over the age of seven--it
might be he would object and veto these. In that case all must
be done again, and the Bill re-passed, unless the House accepted
his amendment instantly by acclamation.
Mabel herself was inclined to these clauses. They provided
that, although worship was to be offered in every parish church
of England on the ensuing first day of October, this was not to
be compulsory on all subjects till the New Year; whereas,
Germany, who had passed the Bill only a month before, had
caused it to come into full force immediately, thus compelling
all her Catholic subjects either to leave the country without
delay or suffer the penalties. These penalties were not
vindictive: on a first offence a week's detention only was to be
given; on the second, one month's imprisonment; on the third,
one year's; and on the fourth, perpetual imprisonment until the
criminal yielded. These were merciful terms, it seemed; for
even imprisonment itself meant no more than reasonable
confinement and employment on Government works. There were
no medieval horrors here; and the act of worship demanded was
so little, too; it consisted of no more than bodily presence in
the church or cathedral on the four new festivals of Maternity,
Life, Sustenance and Paternity, celebrated on the first day of
each quarter. Sunday worship was to be purely voluntary.
She could not understand how any man could refuse this
homage. These four things were facts--they were the
manifestations of what she called the Spirit of the World--and
if others called that Power God, yet surely these ought to be
considered as His functions. Where then was the difficulty? It
was not as if Christian worship were not permitted, under the
usual regulations. Catholics could still go to mass. And yet
appalling things were threatened in Germany: not less than
twelve thousand persons had already left for Rome; and it was
rumoured that forty thousand would refuse this simple act of
homage a few days hence. It bewildered and angered her to think
of it.
For herself the new worship was a crowning sign of the
triumph of Humanity. Her heart had yearned for some such thing
as this--some public corporate profession of what all now
believed. She had so resented the dullness of folk who were
content with action and never considered its springs. Surely
this instinct within her was a true one; she desired to stand
with her fellows in some solemn place, consecrated not by
priests but by the will of man; to have as her inspirers sweet
singing and the peal of organs; to utter her sorrow with
thousands beside her at her own feebleness of immolation
before the Spirit of all; to sing aloud her praise of the glory
of life, and to offer by sacrifice and incense an emblematic
homage to That from which she drew her being, and to whom one
day she must render it again. Ah! these Christians had
understood human nature, she had told herself a hundred times:
it was true that they had degraded it, darkened light, poisoned
thought, misinterpreted instinct; but they had understood that
man must worship--must worship or sink.
For herself she intended to go at least once a week to the
little old church half-a-mile away from her home, to kneel
there before the sunlit sanctuary, to meditate on sweet
mysteries, to present herself to That which she was learning to
love, and to drink, it might be, new draughts of life and power.
Ah! but the Bill must pass first. . . . She clenched her hands
on the rail, and stared steadily before her on the ranks of
heads, the open gangways, the great mace on the table, and
heard, above the murmur of the crowd outside and the dying
whispers within, her own heart beat.
She could not see Him, she knew. He would come in from
beneath through the door that none but He might use, straight
into the seat beneath the canopy. But she would hear His voice
--that must be joy enough for her. . . .
Ah! there was silence now outside; the soft roar had died. He
had come then. And through swimming eyes she saw the long
ridges of heads rise beneath her, and through drumming ears
heard the murmur of many feet. All faces looked this way; and
she watched them as a mirror to see the reflected light of His
presence. There was a gentle sobbing somewhere in the air--was
it her own or another's? . . . the click of a door; a great
mellow booming overhead, shock after shock, as the huge tenor
bells tolled their three strokes; and, in an instant, over the
white faces passed a ripple, as if some breeze of passion shook
the souls within; there was a swaying here and there; and a
passionless voice spoke half a dozen words in Esperanto, out of
sight:
"Englishmen, I assent to the Bill of Worship."
(III)
It was not until mid-day breakfast on the following morning
that husband and wife met again. Oliver had slept in town and
telephoned about eleven o'clock that he would be home
immediately, bringing a guest with him: and shortly before
noon she heard their voices in the hall.
Mr. Francis, who was presently introduced to her, seemed a
harmless kind of man, she thought, not interesting, though he
seemed in earnest about this Bill. It was not until breakfast
was nearly over that she understood who he was.
"Don't go, Mabel," said her husband, as she made a movement
to rise. "You will like to hear about this, I expect. My wife
knows all that I know," he added.
Mr. Francis smiled and bowed.
"I may tell her about you, sir?" said Oliver again.
"Why, certainly."
Then she heard that he had been a Catholic priest a few
months before, and that Mr. Snowford was in consultation with
him as to the ceremonies in the Abbey. She was conscious of a
sudden interest as she heard this.
"Oh! do talk," she said. "I want to hear everything."
It seemed that Mr. Francis had seen the new Minister of
Public Worship that morning, and had received a definite
commission from him to take charge of the ceremonies on the
first of October. Two dozen of his colleagues, too, were to be
enrolled among the ceremoniarii, at least temporarily--and
after the event they were to be sent on a lecturing tour to
organise the national worship throughout the country.
Of course things would be somewhat sloppy at first, said Mr.
Francis; but by the New Year it was hoped that all would be in
order, at least in the cathedrals and principal towns.
"It is important," he said, "that this should be done as soon
as possible. It is very necessary to make a good impression.
There are thousands who have the instinct of worship, without
knowing how to satisfy it."
"That is perfectly true," said Oliver. "I have felt that for a
long time. I suppose it is the deepest instinct in man."
"As to the ceremonies----" went on the other, with a
slightly important air. His eyes roved round a moment; then he
dived into his breast-pocket, and drew out a thin red-covered
book.
"Here is the Order of Worship for the Feast of Paternity," he
said. "I have had it interleaved, and have made a few notes."
He began to turn the pages, and Mabel, with considerable
excitement, drew her chair a little closer to listen.
"That is right, sir," said the other. "Now give us a little
lecture."
Mr. Francis closed the book on his finger, pushed his plate
aside, and began to discourse.
"First," he said, "we must remember that this ritual is based
almost entirely upon that of the Masons. Three-quarters at
least of the entire function will be occupied by that. With that
the ceremoniarii will not interfere, beyond seeing that the
insignia are ready in the vestries and properly put on. The
proper officials will conduct the rest. . . . I need not speak of
that then. The difficulties begin with the last quarter."
He paused, and with a glance of apology began arranging forks
and glasses before him on the cloth.
"Now here," he said, "we have the old sanctuary of the abbey.
In the place of the reredos and Communion table there will be
erected the large altar of which the ritual speaks, with the
steps leading up to it from the floor. Behind the altar--
extending almost to the old shrine of the Confessor--will stand
the pedestal with the emblematic figure upon it; and--so far as
I understand from the absence of directions--each such figure
will remain in place until the eve of the next quarterly feast."
"What kind of figure?" put in the girl.
Francis glanced at her husband.
"I understand that Mr. Markenheim has been consulted," he
said. "He will design and execute them. Each is to represent its
own feast. This for Paternity----"
He paused again.
"Yes, Mr. Francis?"
"This one, I understand, is to be the naked figure of a man."
"A kind of Apollo--or Jupiter, my dear," put in Oliver.
Yes--that seemed all right, thought Mabel. Mr. Francis's
voice moved on hastily.
"A new procession enters at this point, after the discourse,"
he said. "It is this that will need special marshalling. I
suppose no rehearsal will be possible?"
"Scarcely," said Oliver, smiling.
The Master of Ceremonies sighed.
"I feared not. Then we must issue very precise printed
instructions. Those who take part will withdraw, I imagine,
during the hymn, to the old chapel of St. Faith. That is what
seems to me the best."
He indicated the chapel.
"After the entrance of the procession all will take their
places on these two sides--here--and here--while the celebrant
with the sacred ministers----"
"Eh?"
Mr. Francis permitted a slight grimace to appear on his
face; he flushed a little.
"The President of Europe----" He broke off. "Ah! that is the
point. Will the President take part? That is not made clear in
the ritual."
"We think so," said Oliver. "He is to be approached."
"Well, if not, I suppose the Minister of Public Worship will
officiate. He with his supporters pass straight up to the foot
of the altar. Remember that the figure is still veiled, and that
the candles have been lighted during the approach of the
procession. There follow the Aspirations printed in the ritual
with the responds. These are sung by the choir, and will be
most impressive, I think. Then the officiant ascends the altar
alone, and, standing, declaims the Address, as it is called. At
the close of it--at the point, that is to say, marked here with
a star, the thurifers will leave the chapel, four in number. One
ascends the altar, leaving the others swinging their thuribles
at its foot--hands his to the officiant and retires. Upon the
sounding of a bell the curtains are drawn back, the officiant
censes the image in silence with four double swings, and, as he
ceases the choir sings the appointed antiphon."
He waved his hands.
"The rest is easy," he said. "We need not discuss that."
To Mabel's mind even the previous ceremonies seemed easy
enough. But she was undeceived.
"You have no idea, Mrs. Brand," went on the ceremoniarius,
"of the difficulties involved even in such a simple matter as
this. The stupidity of people is prodigious. I foresee a great
deal of hard work for us all. . . . Who is to deliver the
discourse, Mr. Brand?"
Oliver shook his head.
"I have no idea," he said. "I suppose Mr. Snowford will
select."
Mr. Francis looked at him doubtfully.
"What is your opinion of the whole affair, sir?" he said.
Oliver paused a moment.
"I think it is necessary," he began. "There would not be such
a cry for worship if it was not a real need. I think too--yes, I
think that on the whole the ritual is impressive. I do not see
how it could be bettered. . . ."
"Yes, Oliver?" put in his wife, questioningly.
"No--there is nothing--except . . . except I hope the people
will understand it."
Mr. Francis broke in:
"My dear sir, worship involves a touch of mystery. You must
remember that. It was the lack of that that made Empire Day
fail in the last century. For myself, I think it is admirable. Of
course much must depend on the manner in which it is
presented. I see many details at present undecided--the colour
of the curtains, and so forth. But the main plan is magnificent.
It is simple, impressive, and, above all, it is unmistakable in
its main lesson----"
"And that you take to be----?"
"I take it that it is homage offered to Life," said the other
slowly. "Life under four aspects--Maternity corresponds to
Christmas and the Christian fable; it is the feast of home,
love, faithfulness. Life itself is approached in spring, teeming,
young, passionate. Sustenance in mid-summer, abundance,
comfort, plenty, and the rest, corresponding somewhat to the
Catholic Corpus Christi; and Paternity, the protective,
generative, masterful idea, as winter draws on. . . . I understand
it was a German thought."
Oliver nodded.
"Yes," he said. "And I suppose it will be the business of the
speaker to explain all this."
"I take it so. It appears to me far more suggestive than the
alternative plan--Citizenship, Labour, and so forth. These, after
all, are subordinate to Life."
Mr. Francis spoke with an extraordinary suppressed
enthusiasm, and the priestly look was more evident than ever.
It was plain that his heart at least demanded worship.
Mabel clasped her hands suddenly.
"I think it is beautiful," she said softly, "and--and it is so
real."
Mr. Francis turned on her with a glow in his brown eyes.
"Ah! yes, madam. That is it. There is no Faith, as we used to
call it: it is the vision of Facts that no one can doubt; and
the incense declares the sole divinity of Life as well as its
mystery."
"What of the figures?" put in Oliver.
"A stone image is impossible, of course. It must be clay for
the present. Mr. Markenheim is to set to work immediately. If
the figures are approved they can then be executed in marble."
Again Mabel spoke with a soft gravity.
"It seems to me," she said, "that this is the last thing that
we needed. It is so hard to keep our principles clear--we must
have a body for them--some kind of expression----"
She paused.
"Yes Mabel?"
"I do not mean," she went on, "that some cannot live without
it, but many cannot. The unimaginative need concrete images.
There must be some channel for their aspirations to flow
through---- Ah! I cannot express myself!"
Oliver nodded slowly. He, too, seemed to be in a meditative
mood.
"Yes," he said. "And this, I suppose, will mould men's
thoughts too: it will keep out all danger of superstition."
Mr. Francis turned on him abruptly.
"What do you think of the Pope's new Religious Order, sir?"
Oliver's face took on it a tinge of grimness.
"I think it is the worst step he ever took--for himself, I
mean. Either it is a real effort, in which case it will provoke
immense indignation--or it is a sham, and will discredit him.
Why do you ask?"
"I was wondering whether any disturbance will be made in the
abbey."
"I should be sorry for the brawler."
A bell rang sharply from the row of telephone labels. Oliver
rose and went to it. Mabel watched him as he touched a button--
mentioned his name, and put his ear to the opening.
"It is Snowford's secretary," he said abruptly to the two
expectant faces. "Snowford wants to--ah!"
Again he mentioned his name and listened. They heard a
sentence or two from him that seemed significant.
"Ah! that is certain, is it? I am sorry. . . . Yes. . . . Oh!
but that is better than nothing. . . . Yes; he is here. . . .
Indeed. Very well; we will be with you directly."
He hooked on the tube, touched the button again, and came
back to them.
"I am sorry," he said. "The President will take no part at
the Feast. But it is uncertain whether he will not be present.
Mr. Snowford wants to see us both at once, Mr. Francis.
Markenheim is with him."
But though Mabel was herself disappointed, she thought he
looked graver than the disappointment warranted.
PERCY Franklin, the new Cardinal-Protector of England, came
slowly along the passage leading from the Pope's apartments,
with Hans Steinmann, Cardinal-Protector of Germany, blowing at
his side. They entered the lift, still in silence, and passed out,
two splendid vivid figures, one erect and virile, the other bent,
fat, and very German from spectacles to flat buckled feet.
At the door of Percy's suite, the Englishman paused, made a
little gesture of reverence, and went in without a word.
A secretary, young Mr. Brent, lately from England, stood up
as his patron came in.
"Eminence," he said, "the English papers are come."
Percy put out a hand, took a paper, passed on into his inner
room, and sat down.
There it all was--gigantic headlines, and four columns of
print broken by startling title phrases in capital letters,
after the fashion set by America a hundred years ago. No better
way even yet had been found of misinforming the unintelligent.
He looked at the top. It was the English edition of the Era.
Then he read the headlines. They ran as follows:
"THE NATIONAL WORSHIP. BEWILDERING SPLENDOUR. RELIGIOUS
ENTHUSIASM. THE ABBEY AND GOD. CATHOLIC FANATIC. EX-PRIESTS
AS FUNCTIONARIES."
He ran his eyes down the page, reading the vivid little
phrases, and drawing from the whole a kind of impressionist
view of the scenes in the Abbey on the previous day, of which he
had already been informed by the telegraph, and the discussion
of which had been the purpose of his interview just now with
the Holy Father.
There plainly was no additional news; and he was laying the
paper down when his eye caught a name.
"It is understood that Mr. Francis, the ceremoniarius (to
whom the thanks of all are due for his reverent zeal and skill),
will proceed shortly to the northern towns to lecture on the
Ritual. It is interesting to reflect that this gentleman only a
few months ago was officiating at a Catholic altar. He was
assisted in his labours by twenty-four confrères with the same
experience behind them."
"Good God!" said Percy aloud. Then he laid the paper down.
But his thoughts had soon left this renegade behind, and once
more he was running over in his mind the significance of the
whole affair, and the advice that he had thought it his duty to
give just now upstairs.
Briefly, there was no use in disputing the fact that the
inauguration of Pantheistic worship had been as stupendous a
success in England as in Germany. France, by the way, was still
too busy with the cult of human individuals, to develop larger
ideas.
But England was deeper; and, somehow, in spite of prophecy,
the affair had taken place without even a touch of bathos or
grotesqueness. It had been said that England was too solid and
too humorous. Yet there had been extraordinary scenes the day
before. A great murmur of enthusiasm had rolled round the
Abbey from end to end as the gorgeous curtains ran back, and
the huge masculine figure, majestic and overwhelming, coloured
with exquisite art, had stood out above the blaze of candles
against the tall screen that shrouded the shrine. Markenheim
had done his work well; and Mr. Brand's passionate discourse had
well prepared the popular mind for the revelation. He had
quoted in his peroration passage after passage from the Jewish
prophets, telling of the City of Peace whose walls rose now
before their eyes.
"Arise, shine, for thy light is come, and the glory of the
Lord is risen upon thee. . . . For behold I create new heavens
and a new earth; and the former shall not be remembered nor
come into mind. . . . Violence shall no more be heard in thy
land, wasting nor destruction within thy borders. O thou so
long afflicted, tossed with tempest and not comforted; behold I
will lay thy stones with fair colours, and thy foundations with
sapphires. . . . I will make thy windows of agates and thy gates
of carbuncles, and all thy borders of pleasant stones. Arise,
shine, for thy light is come."
As the chink of the censer-chains had sounded in the
stillness, with one consent the enormous crowd had fallen on
its knees, and so remained, as the smoke curled up from the
hands of the rebel figure who held the thurible. Then the organ
had begun to blow, and from the huge massed chorus in the
transepts had rolled out the anthem, broken by one passionate
cry, from some mad Catholic. But it had been silenced in an
instant. . . .
It was incredible--utterly incredible, Percy had told
himself. Yet the incredible had happened; and England had found
its worship once more--the necessary culmination of unimpeded
subjectivity. From the provinces had come the like news. In
cathedral after cathedral had been the same scenes.
Markenheim's masterpiece, executed in four days after the
passing of the bill, had been reproduced by the ordinary
machinery, and four thousand replicas had been despatched to
every important centre. Telegraphic reports had streamed into
the London papers that everywhere the new movement had been
received with acclamation, and that human instincts had found
adequate expression at last. If there had not been a God, mused
Percy reminiscently, it would have been necessary to invent
one. He was astonished, too, at the skill with which the new
cult had been framed. It moved round no disputable points;
there was no possibility of divergent political tendencies to
mar its success, no over-insistence on citizenship, labour and
the rest, for those who were secretly individualistic and idle.
Life was the one fount and centre of it all, clad in the gorgeous
robes of ancient worship. Of course the thought had been
Felsenburgh's, though a German name had been mentioned. It was
Positivism of a kind, Catholicism without Christianity,
Humanity worship without its inadequacy. It was not man that
was worshipped but the Idea of man, deprived of his
supernatural principle. Sacrifice, too, was recognised--the
instinct of oblation without the demand made by transcendent
Holiness upon the blood-guiltiness of man. . . . In fact,--in
fact, said Percy, it was exactly as clever as the devil, and as
old as Cain.
The advice he had given to the Holy Father just now was a
counsel of despair, or of hope; he really did not know which. He
had urged that a stringent decree should be issued, forbidding
any acts of violence on the part of Catholics. The faithful were
to be encouraged to be patient, to hold utterly aloof from the
worship, to say nothing unless they were questioned, to suffer
bonds gladly. He had suggested, in company with the German
Cardinal, that they two should return to their respective
countries at the close of the year, to encourage the waverers;
but the answer had been that their vocation was to remain in
Rome, unless anything unforeseen happened.
As for Felsenburgh, there was little news. It was said that he
was in the East; but further details were secret. Percy
understood quite well why he had not been present at the
worship as had been expected. First, it would have been
difficult to decide between the two countries that had
established it; and, secondly, he was too brilliant a politician
to risk the possible association of failure with his own person;
thirdly, there was something the matter with the East.
This last point was difficult to understand; it had not yet
become explicit, but it seemed as if the movement of last year
had not yet run its course. It was undoubtedly difficult to
explain the new President's constant absences from his adopted
continent, unless there was something that demanded his
presence elsewhere; but the extreme discretion of the East and
the stringent precautions taken by the Empire made it
impossible to know any details. It was apparently connected
with religion; there were rumours, portents, prophets, ecstatics
there.
* * * * * *
Upon Percy himself had fallen a subtle change which he
himself was recognising. He no longer soared to confidence or
sank to despair. He said his mass, read his enormous
correspondence, meditated strictly; and, though he felt nothing
he knew everything. There was not a tinge of doubt upon his
faith, but neither was there emotion in it. He was as one who
laboured in the depths of the earth, crushed even in
imagination, yet conscious that somewhere birds sang, and the
sun shone, and water ran. He understood his own state well
enough, and perceived that he had come to a reality of faith
that was new to him, for it was sheer faith--sheer apprehension
of the Spiritual--without either the dangers or the joys of
imaginative vision. He expressed it to himself by saying that
there were three processes through which God led the soul: the
first was that of external faith, which assents to all things
presented by the accustomed authority, practises religion, and
is neither interested nor doubtful; the second follows the
quickening of the emotional and perceptive powers of the soul,
and is set about with consolations, desires, mystical visions
and perils; it is in this plane that resolutions are taken and
vocations found and shipwrecks experienced; and the third,
mysterious and inexpressible, consists in the re-enactment in
the purely spiritual sphere of all that has preceded (as a play
follows a rehearsal), in which God is grasped but not
experienced, grace is absorbed unconsciously and even
distastefully, and little by little the inner spirit is
conformed in the depths of its being, far within the spheres of
emotion and intellectual perception, to the image and mind of
Christ.
So he lay back now, thinking, a long, stately, scarlet figure,
in his deep chair, staring out over Holy Rome seen through the
misty September haze. How long, he wondered, would there be
peace? To his eyes even already the air was black with doom.
He struck his hand-bell at last.
"Bring me Father Blackmore's last report," he said, as his
secretary appeared.
(II)
Percy's intuitive faculties were keen by nature and had been
vastly increased by cultivation. He had never forgotten Father
Blackmore's shrewd remarks of a year ago; and one of his first
acts as Cardinal-Protector had been to appoint that priest on
the list of English correspondents. Hitherto he had received
some dozen letters, and not one of them had been without its
grain of gold. Especially he had noticed that one warning ran
through them all, namely, that sooner or later there would be
some overt act of provocation on the part of English Catholics;
and it was the memory of this that had inspired his vehement
entreaties to the Pope this morning. As in the Roman and
African persecutions of the first three centuries, so now, the
greatest danger to the Catholic community lay not in the
unjust measures of the Government but in the indiscreet zeal of
the faithful themselves. The world desired nothing better than
a handle to its blade. The scabbard was already cast away.
When the young man had brought the four closely-written
sheets, dated from Westminster, the previous evening, Percy
turned at once to the last paragraph before the usual
Recommendations.
"Mr. Brand's late secretary, Mr. Phillips, whom your Eminence
commended to me, has been to see me two or three times. He is
in a curious state. He has no faith; yet, intellectually, he sees
no hope anywhere but in the Catholic Church. He has even begged
for admission to the Order of Christ Crucified, which of course
is impossible. But there is no doubt he is sincere; otherwise he
would have professed Catholicism. I have introduced him to
many Catholics in the hope that they may help him. I should
much wish your Eminence to see him."
Before leaving England, Percy had followed up the
acquaintance he had made so strangely over Mrs. Brand's
reconciliation to God, and, scarcely knowing why, had commended
him to the priest. He had not been particularly impressed by
Mr. Phillips; he had thought him a timid, undecided creature,
yet he had been struck by the extremely unselfish action by
which the man had forfeited his position. There must surely be
a good deal behind.
And now the impulse had come to send for him. Perhaps the
spiritual atmosphere of Rome would precipitate faith. In any
case, the conversation of Mr. Brand's late secretary might be
instructive.
He struck the bell again.
"Mr. Brent," he said, "in your next letter to Father
Blackmore, tell him that I wish to see the man whom he
proposed to send--Mr. Phillips."
"Yes, Eminence."
"There is no hurry. He can send him at his leisure."
"Yes, Eminence."
"But he must not come till January. That will be time
enough, unless there is urgent reason."
"Yes, Eminence."
* * * * * *
The development of the Order of Christ Crucified had gone
forward with almost miraculous success. The appeal issued by
the Holy Father throughout Christendom had been as fire among
stubble. It seemed as if the Christian world had reached exactly
that point of tension at which a new organisation of this
nature was needed, and the response had startled even the most
sanguine. Practically the whole of Rome with its suburbs--three
millions in all--had run to the enrolling stations in St.
Peter's as starving men run to food, and desperate to the
storming of a breach. For day after day the Pope himself had
sat enthroned below the altar of the Chair, a glorious, radiant
figure, growing ever white and weary towards evening, imparting
his Blessing with a silent sign to each individual of the vast
crowd that swarmed up between the barriers, fresh from fast and
Communion, to kneel before his new Superior and kiss the
Pontifical ring. The requirements had been as stringent as
circumstances allowed. Each postulant was obliged to go to
confession to a specially authorised priest, who examined
sharply into motives and sincerity, and only one-third of the
applicants had been accepted. This, the authorities pointed out
to the scornful, was not an excessive proportion; for it was to
be remembered that most of those who had presented
themselves had already undergone a sifting fierce as fire. Of
the three millions in Rome, two millions at least were exiles
for their faith, preferring to live obscure and despised in the
shadow of God rather than in the desolate glare of their own
infidel countries.
On the fifth evening of the enrolment of novices an
astonishing incident had taken place. The old King of Spain
(Queen Victoria's second son), already on the edge of the grave,
had just risen and tottered before his Ruler; it seemed for an
instant as if he would fall, when the Pope himself, by a sudden
movement, had risen, caught him in his arms and kissed him;
and then, still standing, had spread his arms abroad and
delivered a fervorino such as never had been heard before in the
history of the basilica.
"Benedictus Dominus!" he cried, with upraised face and
shining eyes. "Blessed be the Lord God of Israel, for He hath
visited and redeemed His people. I, John, Vicar of Christ,
Servant of Servants, and sinner among sinners, bid you be of
good courage in the Name of God. By Him Who hung on the Cross,
I promise eternal life to all who persevere in His Order. He
Himself has said it. To him that overcometh I will give a crown
of life.
"Little children; fear not him that killeth the body. There
is no more that he can do. God and His Mother are amongst
us. . . ."
So his voice had poured on, telling the enormous awe-
stricken crowd of the blood that already had been shed on the
place where they stood, of the body of the Apostle that lay
scarcely fifty yards away, urging, encouraging, inspiring. They
had vowed themselves to death, if that were God's Will; and if
not, the intention would be taken for the deed. They were under
obedience now; their wills were no longer theirs but God's:
under chastity--for their bodies were bought with a price; under
poverty, and theirs was the kingdom of heaven.
He had ended by a great silent Benediction of the City and
the World: and there were not wanting a half-dozen of the
faithful who had seen, they thought, a white shape in the form
of a bird that hung in the air while he spoke--white as a mist,
translucent as water. . . .
The consequent scenes in the city and suburbs had been
unparalleled, for thousands of families had with one consent
dissolved human ties. Husbands had found their way to the huge
houses on the Quirinal set apart for them; wives to the
Aventine; while the children, as confident as their parents, had
swarmed over to the Sisters of St. Vincent who had received at
the Pope's orders the gift of three streets to shelter them in.
Everywhere the smoke of burning went up in the squares where
household property, rendered useless by the vows of poverty,
were consumed by their late owners; and daily long trains
moved out from the station outside the walls carrying jubilant
loads of those who were despatched by the Pope's delegates to
be the salt of men, consumed in their function, and leaven
plunged in the vast measures of the infidel world. And that
infidel world welcomed their coming with bitter laughter.
From the rest of Christendom had poured in news of success.
The same precautions had been observed as in Rome, for the
directions issued were precise and searching; and day after day
came in the long rolls of the new Religious drawn up by the
diocesan superiors.
Within the last few days, too, other lists had arrived, more
glorious than all. Not only did reports stream in that already
the Order was beginning its work and that already broken
communications were being re-established, that devoted
missioners were in process of organising themselves, and that
hope was once more rising in the most desperate hearts; but
better than all this was the tidings of victory in another
sphere. In Paris forty of the new-born Order had been burned
alive in one day in the Latin quarter, before the Government
intervened. From Spain, Holland, Russia had come in other
names. In Düsseldorf eighteen men and boys, surprised at their
singing of Prime in the church of Saint Laurence, had been cast
down one by one into the city-sewer, each chanting as he
vanished:
"Christi Fili Dei vivi miserere nobis,"
and from the darkness had come up the same broken song till it
was silenced with stones. Meanwhile, the German prisons were
thronged with the first batches of recusants.
The world shrugged its shoulders, and declared that they had
brought it on themselves, while yet it deprecated mob-violence,
and requested the attention of the authorities and the decisive
repression of this new conspiracy of superstition. And within
St. Peter's Church the workmen were busy at the long rows of
new altars, affixing to the stone diptychs the brass-forged
names of those who had already fulfilled their vows and gained
their crowns.
It was the first word of God's reply to the world's challenge.
* * * * * *
As Christmas drew on it was announced that the Sovereign
pontiff would sing mass on the last day of the year, at the
papal altar of Saint Peter's, on behalf of the Order; and
preparations began to be made.
It was to be a kind of public inauguration of the new
enterprise; and, to the astonishment of all, a special summons
was issued to all members of the Sacred College throughout the
world to be present, unless hindered by sickness. It seemed as
if the Pope were determined that the world should understand
that war was declared; for, although the command would not
involve the absence of any Cardinal from his province for more
than five days, yet many inconveniences must surely result.
However, it had been said, and it was to be done.
* * * * * *
It was a strange Christmas.
Percy was ordered to attend the Pope at his second mass, and
himself said his three at midnight in his own private oratory.
For the first time in his life he saw that of which he had heard
so often, the wonderful old-world Pontifical procession, lit by
torches, going through the streets from the Lateran to St.
Anastasia, where the Pope for the last few years had restored
the ancient custom discontinued for nearly a century-and-a-
half. The little basilica was reserved, of course, in every
corner for the peculiarly privileged; but the streets outside
along the whole route from the Cathedral to the church--and,
indeed, the other two sides of the triangle as well, were one
dense mass of silent heads and flaming torches. The Holy
Father was attended at the altar by the usual sovereigns; and
Percy from his place watched the heavenly drama of Christ's
Passion enacted through the veil of His nativity at the hands of
His old Angelic Vicar. It was hard to perceive Calvary here; it
was surely the air of Bethlehem, the celestial light, not the
supernatural darkness, that beamed round the simple altar. It
was the Child called Wonderful that lay there beneath the old
hands, rather than the stricken Man of Sorrows.
Adeste fideles sang the choir from the tribune.--Come, let us
adore, rather than weep; let us exult, be content, be ourselves
like little children. As He for us became a child, let us become
childlike for Him. Let us put on the garments of infancy and
the shoes of peace. For the Lord hath reigned; He is clothed
with beauty: the Lord is clothed with strength and hath girded
Himself. He hath established the world which shall not be
moved: His throne is prepared from of old. He is from
everlasting. Rejoice greatly then, O daughter of Zion, shout for
joy, O daughter of Jerusalem; behold thy King cometh, to thee,
the Holy One, the Saviour of the world. It will be time, then,
to suffer by and bye, when the Prince of this world cometh upon
the Prince of Heaven.
So Percy mused, standing apart in his gorgeousness, striving
to make himself little and simple. Surely nothing was too hard
for God! Might not this mystic Birth once more do what it had
done before--bring into subjection through the might of its
weakness every proud thing that exalts itself above all that is
called God? It had drawn wise Kings once across the desert, as
well as shepherds from their flocks. It had kings about it now,
kneeling with the poor and foolish, kings who had laid down
their crowns, who brought the gold of loyal hearts, the myrrh
of desired martyrdom, and the incense of a pure faith. Could
not republics, too, lay aside their splendour, mobs be tamed,
selfishness deny itself, and wisdom confess its ignorance? . . .
Then he remembered Felsenburgh; and his heart sickened
within him.
(III)
Six days later, Percy rose as usual, said his mass,
breakfasted, and sat down to say office until his servant should
summon him to vest for the Pontifical mass.
He had learned to expect bad news now so constantly--of
apostasies, deaths, losses--that the lull of the previous week
had come to him with extraordinary refreshment. It appeared to
him as if his musings in St. Anastasia had been truer than he
thought, and that the sweetness of the old feast had not yet
wholly lost its power even over a world that denied its
substance. For nothing at all had happened of importance. A few
more martyrdoms had been chronicled, but they had been
isolated cases; and of Felsenburgh there had been no tidings at
all. Europe confessed its ignorance of his business.
On the other hand, to-morrow, Percy knew very well, would be
a day of extraordinary moment in England and Germany at any
rate; for in England it was appointed as the first occasion of
compulsory worship throughout the country, while it was the
second in Germany. Men and women would have to declare
themselves now.
He had seen on the previous evening a photograph of the
image that was to be worshipped next day in the Abbey; and, in
a fit of loathing, had torn it to shreds. It represented a nude
woman, huge and majestic, entrancingly lovely, with head and
shoulders thrown back, as one who sees a strange and heavenly
vision, arms downstretched and hands a little raised, with wide
fingers, as in astonishment--the whole attitude, with feet and
knees pressed together, suggestive of expectation, hope and
wonder; in devilish mockery her long hair was crowned with
twelve stars. This, then, was the spouse of the other, the
embodiment of man's ideal maternity, still waiting for her
child. . . .
When the white scraps lay like poisonous snow at his feet, he
had sprung across the room to his prie-dieu, and fallen there in
an agony of reparation.
"Oh! Mother, Mother!" he cried to the stately Queen of Heaven
who, with Her true Son long ago in Her arms, looked down on
him from Her bracket--no more than that.
* * * * * *
But he was still again this morning, and celebrated Saint
Silvester, Pope and Martyr, the last saint in the procession of
the Christian year, with tolerable equanimity. The sights of
last night, the throng of officials, the stately, scarlet,
unfamiliar figures of the Cardinals who had come in from north,
south, east and west--these helped to reassure him again--
unreasonably, as he knew, yet effectually. The very air was
electric with expectation. All night the piazza had been
crowded by a huge, silent mob waiting till the opening of the
doors at seven o'clock. Now the church itself was full, and the
piazza full again. Far down the street to the river, so far as he
could see as he had leaned from his window just now, lay that
solemn motionless pavement of heads. The roof of the
colonnade showed a fringe of them, the house-tops were black--
and this in the bitter cold of a clear, frosty morning, for it
was announced that after mass and the proceeding of the
members of the Order past the Pontifical Throne, the Pope
would give Apostolic Benediction to the City and the World.
Percy finished Terce, closed his book and lay back; his
servant would be here in a minute now.
His mind began to run over the function, and he reflected
that the entire Sacred College (with the exception of the
Cardinal-Protector of Jerusalem, detained by sickness),
numbering sixty-four members, would take part. This would
mean an unique sight by and bye. Eight years before, he
remembered, after the freedom of Rome, there had been a
similar assembly; but the Cardinals at that time amounted to
no more than fifty-three all told, and four had been absent.
Then he heard voices in his ante-room, a quick step, and a
loud English expostulation. That was curious, and he sat up.
Then he heard a sentence.
"His Eminence must go to vest; it is useless."
There was a sharp answer, a faint scuffle, and a snatch at the
handle. This was indecent; so Percy stood up, made three strides
of it to the door, and tore it open.
A man stood there, whom at first he did not recognise, pale
and disordered.
"Why----" began Percy, and recoiled.
"Mr. Phillips!" he said.
The other threw out his hands.
"It is I, sir--your Eminence--this moment arrived. It is life
and death. Your servant tells me----"
"Who sent you?"
"Father Blackmore."
"Good news or bad?"
The man rolled his eyes towards the servant, who still stood
erect and offended a yard away; and Percy understood.
He put his hand on the other's arm, drawing him through the
doorway.
"Tap upon this door in two minutes, James," he said.
They passed across the polished floor together; Percy went
to his usual place in the window, leaned against the shutter,
and spoke.
"Tell me in one sentence, sir," he said to the breathless
man.
"There is a plot among the Catholics. They intend destroying
the Abbey to-morrow with explosives. I knew that the Pope----"
THE volor-stage was comparatively empty this afternoon, as the
little party of six stepped out on to it from the lift. There
was nothing to distinguish these from ordinary travellers. The
two Cardinals of Germany and England were wrapped in plain
furs, without insignia of any kind; their chaplains stood near
them, while the two men-servants hurried forward with the bags
to secure a private compartment.
The four kept complete silence, watching the busy movements
of the officials on board, staring unseeingly at the sleek,
polished monster that lay netted in steel at their feet, and the
great folded fins that would presently be cutting the thin air
at a hundred and fifty miles an hour.
Then Percy, by a sudden movement, turned from the others,
went to the open window that looked over Rome, and leaned
there with his elbows on the sill, looking.
* * * * * *
It was a strange view before him.
It was darkening now towards sunset, and the sky, primrose-
green overhead, deepened to a dear tawny orange above the
horizon, with a sanguine line or two at the edge, and beneath
that lay the deep evening violet of the city, blotted here and
there by the black of cypresses and cut by the thin leafless
pinnacles of a poplar grove that aspired without the walls. But
right across the picture rose the enormous dome, of an
indescribable tint; it was grey, it was violet--it was what the
eye chose to make it--and through it, giving its solidity the
air of a bubble, shone the southern sky, flushed too with faint
orange. It was this that was supreme and dominant; the serrated
line of domes, spires and pinnacles, the crowded roofs beneath,
in the valley dell' Inferno, the fairy hills far away--all were
but the annexe to this mighty tabernacle of God. Already lights
were beginning to shine, as for thirty centuries they had shone;
thin straight skeins of smoke were ascending against the
darkening sky. The hum of this Mother of cities was beginning
to be still, for the keen air kept folks indoors; and the
evening peace was descending that closed another day and
another year. Beneath in the narrow streets Percy could see
tiny figures, hurrying like belated ants; the crack of a whip,
the cry of a woman, the wail of a child came up to this
immense elevation like details of a murmur from another
world. They, too, would soon be quiet, and there would be peace.
A heavy bell beat faintly from far away, and the drowsy city
turned to murmur its good-night to the Mother of God. From a
thousand towers came the tiny melody, floating across the great
air spaces, in a thousand accents, the solemn bass of St.
Peter's, the mellow tenor of the Lateran, the rough cry from
some old slum church, the peevish tinkle of convents and
chapels--all softened and made mystical in this grave evening
air--it was the wedding of delicate sound and clear light. Above,
the liquid orange sky; beneath, this sweet, subdued ecstasy of
bells.
"Alma Redemptoris Mater," whispered Percy, his eyes wet with
tears. "Gentle Mother of the Redeemer--the open door of the
sky, star of the sea--have mercy on sinners. The Angel of the
Lord announced it to Mary, and she conceived of the Holy Ghost.
. . . Pour, therefore, Lord, Thy grace into our hearts. Let us,
who know Christ's incarnation, rise through passion and cross
to the glory of Resurrection--through the same Christ our
Lord."
Another bell clanged sharply close at hand, calling him down
to earth, and wrong, and labour and grief; and he turned to see
the motionless volor itself one blaze of brilliant internal
light, and the two priests following the German Cardinal across
the gangway.
It was the rear compartment that the men had taken; and
when he had seen that the old man was comfortable, still
without a word he passed out again into the central passage to
see the last of Rome.
The exit-door had now been snapped, and as Percy stood at
the opposite window looking out at the high wall that would
presently sink beneath him, throughout the whole of the
delicate frame began to run the vibration of the electric
engine. There was the murmur of talking somewhere, a heavy
step shook the floor, a bell clanged again, twice, and a sweet
wind-chord sounded. Again it sounded; the vibration ceased, and
the edge of the high wall against the tawny sky on which he had
fixed his eyes, sank suddenly like a dropped bar, and he
staggered a little in his place. A moment later the dome rose
again, and itself sank, the city, a fringe of towers and a mass
of dark roofs, pricked with light, span like a whirlpool; the
jewelled stars themselves sprang this way and that; and with
one more long cry the marvellous machine righted itself, beat
with its wings, and settled down, with the note of the flying air
passing through rising shrillness into vibrant silence, to its
long voyage to the north.
Further and further sank the city behind; it was a patch now:
greyness on black. The sky seemed to grow more huge and all-
containing as the earth relapsed into darkness; it glowed like a
vast dome of wonderful glass, darkening even as it glowed; and
as Percy dropped his eyes once more round the extreme edge of
the car the city was but a line and a bubble--a line and a
swelling--a line, and nothingness.
He drew a long breath, and went back to his friends.
(II)
"Tell me again," said the old Cardinal, when the two were
settled down opposite to one another, and the chaplains were
gone to another compartment. "Who is this man?"
"This man? He was secretary to Oliver Brand, one of our
politicians. He fetched me to old Mrs. Brand's death-bed, and
lost his place in consequence. He is in journalism now. He is
perfectly honest. No, he is not a Catholic, though he longs to
be one. That is why they confided in him."
"And they?"
"I know nothing of them, except that they are a desperate
set. They have enough faith to act, but not enough to be
patient. . . . I suppose they thought this man would
sympathise. But unfortunately he has a conscience, and he also
sees that any attempt of this kind would be the last straw on
the back of toleration. Eminence, do you realise how violent
the feeling is against us?"
The old man shook his head lamentably.
"Do I not?" he murmured. "And my Germans are in it? Are you
sure?"
"Eminence, it is a vast plot. It has been simmering for
months. There have been meetings every week. They have kept
the secret marvellously. Your Germans only delayed that the
blow might be more complete. And now, to-morrow----" Percy
drew back with a despairing gesture.
"And the Holy Father?"
"I went to him as soon as mass was over. He withdrew all
opposition, and sent for you. It is our one chance, Eminence."
"And you think our plan will hinder it?"
"I have no idea, but I can think of nothing else. I shall go
straight to the Archbishop and tell him all. We arrive, I
believe, at three o'clock, and you in Berlin about seven, I
suppose, by German time. The function is fixed for eleven. By
eleven, then, we shall have done all that is possible. The
Government will know, and they will know, too, that we are
innocent in Rome. I imagine they will cause it to be announced
that the Cardinal-Protector and the Archbishop, with his
coadjutors, will be present in the sacristies. They will double
every guard; they will parade volors overhead--and then--well!
in God's hands be the rest."
"Do you think the conspirators will attempt it?"
"I have no idea," said Percy shortly.
"I understand they have alternative plans."
"Just so. If all is clear, they intend dropping the explosive
from above; if not, at least three men have offered to sacrifice
themselves by taking it into the Abbey themselves. . . . And
you, Eminence?"
The old man eyed him steadily.
"My programme is yours," he said. "Eminence, have you
considered the effect in either case? If, nothing happens----"
"If nothing happens we shall be accused of a fraud, of seeking
to advertise ourselves. If anything happens--well, we shall all
go before God together. Pray God it may be the second," he
added passionately.
"It will be at least easier to bear," observed the old man.
"I beg your pardon, Eminence. I should not have said that."
There fell a silence between the two, in which no sound was
heard but the faint untiring vibration of the screw, and the
sudden cough of a man in the next compartment. Percy leaned
his head wearily on his hand, and stared from the window.
The earth was now dark beneath them--an immense emptiness;
above, the huge engulfing sky was still faintly luminous, and
through the high frosty mist through which they moved stars
glimmered now and again, as the car swayed and tacked across
the wind.
"It will be cold among the Alps," murmured Percy. Then he
broke off. "And I have not one shred of evidence," he said;
"nothing but the word of a man."
"And you are sure?"
"I am sure."
"Eminence," said the German suddenly, staring straight into
his face, "the likeness is extraordinary."
Percy smiled listlessly. He was tired of hearing that.
"What do you make of it?" persisted the other.
"I have been asked that before," said Percy. "I have no
views."
"It seems to me that God means something," murmured the
German heavily, still staring at him.
"Well, Eminence?"
"A kind of antithesis--a reverse of the medal. I do not
know."
Again there was silence. A chaplain looked in through the
glazed door, a homely, blue-eyed German, and was waved away
once more.
"Eminence," said the old man abruptly, "there is surely more
to speak of. Plans to be made."
Percy shook his head.
"There are no plans to be made," he said. "We know nothing
but the fact--no names--nothing. We--we are like children in a
tiger's cage. And one of us has just made a gesture in the
tiger's face."
"I suppose we shall communicate with one another?"
"If we are in existence."
It was curious how Percy took the lead. He had worn his
scarlet for about three months, and his companion for twelve
years; yet it was the younger who dictated plans and arranged.
He was scarcely conscious of its strangeness, however. Ever
since the shocking news of the morning, when a new mine had
been sprung under the shaking Church, and he had watched the
stately ceremonial, the gorgeous splendour, the dignified,
tranquil movements of the Pope and his court, with a secret
that burned his heart and brain--above all, since that quick
interview in which old plans had been reversed and a startling
decision formed, and a blessing given and received, and a
farewell looked not uttered--all done in half-an-hour--his
whole nature had concentrated itself into one keen tense force,
like a coiled spring. He felt power tingling to his finger-tips--
power and the dullness of an immense despair. Every prop had
been cut, every brace severed; he, the City of Rome, the
Catholic Church, the very supernatural itself, seemed to hang
now on one single thing--the Finger of God. And if that failed--
well, nothing would ever matter any more. . . .
He was going now to one of two things--ignominy or death.
There was no third thing--unless, indeed, the conspirators were
actually taken with their instruments upon them. But that was
impossible. Either they would refrain, knowing that God's
ministers would fall with them, and in that case there would be
the ignominy of a detected fraud, of a miserable attempt to win
credit. Or they would not refrain; they would count the death of
a Cardinal and a few bishops a cheap price to pay for revenge--
and in that case--well, there was Death and Judgement. But
Percy had ceased to fear. No ignominy could be greater than
that which he already bore--the ignominy of loneliness and
discredit. And death could be nothing but sweet--it would at
least be knowledge and rest. He was willing to risk all on God.
The other, with a little gesture of apology, took out his
office book presently, and began to read.
Percy looked at him with an immense envy. Ah! if only he
were as old as that! He could bear a year or two more of this
misery, but not fifty years, he thought. It was an almost
endless vista that (even if things went well) opened before him,
of continual strife, self-repression, energy, misrepresentation
from his enemies. The Church was sinking further every day.
What if this new spasm of fervour were no more than the dying
flare of faith? How could he bear that? He would have to see the
tide of atheism rise higher and more triumphant every day;
Felsenburgh had given it an impetus of whose end there was no
prophesying. Never before had a single man wielded the full
power of democracy. Then once more he looked forward to the
morrow. Oh! if it could but end in death! . . . Beati mortui qui
in Domino moriuntur! . . .
It was no good; it was cowardly to think in this fashion.
After all, God was God--He takes up the isles as a very little
thing.
Percy took out his office book, found Prime and St.
Silvester, signed himself with the cross, and began to pray. A
minute later the two chaplains slipped in once more, and sat
down; and all was silent, save for the throb of the screw, and
the strange whispering rush of air outside.
(III)
It was about nineteen o'clock that the ruddy English
conductor looked in at the doorway, waking Percy from his doze.
"Dinner will be served in half-an-hour, gentlemen," he said
(speaking Esperanto, as the rule was on international cars). "We
do not stop at Turin to-night."
He shut the door and went out, and the sound of closing doors
came down the corridor as he made the same announcement to
each compartment.
There were no passengers to descend at Turin, then, reflected
Percy; and no doubt a wireless message had been received that
there were none to come on board either. That was good news:
it would give him more time in London. It might even enable
Cardinal Steinmann to catch an earlier volor from Paris to
Berlin; but he was not sure how they ran. It was a pity that the
German had not been able to catch the thirteen o'clock from
Rome to Berlin direct. So he calculated, in a kind of
superficial insensibility.
He stood up presently to stretch himself. Then he passed out
and along the corridor to the lavatory to wash his hands.
He became fascinated by the view as he stood before the
basin at the rear of the car, for even now they were passing
over Turin. It was a blur of light, vivid and beautiful, that
shone beneath him in the midst of this gulf of darkness,
sweeping away southwards into the gloom as the car sped on
towards the Alps. How little, he thought, seemed this great city
seen from above; and yet, how mighty it was! It was from that
glimmer, already five miles behind, that Italy was controlled;
in one of these dolls' houses of which he had caught but a
glimpse, men sat in council over souls and bodies, and
abolished God, and smiled at His Church. And God allowed it all,
and made no sign. It was there that Felsenburgh had been, a
month or two ago--Felsenburgh, his double! And again the
mental sword tore and stabbed at his heart.
* * * * * *
A few minutes later, the four ecclesiastics were sitting at
their round table in a little screened compartment of the
dining-room in the bows of the airship. It was an excellent
dinner, served, as usual, from the kitchen in the bowels of the
volor, and rose, course by course, with a smooth click, into the
centre of the table. There was a bottle of red wine to each
diner, and both table and chairs swung easily to the very slight
motion of the ship. But they did not talk much, for there was
only one subject possible to the two cardinals, and the
chaplains had not yet been admitted into the full secret.
It was growing cold now, and even the hot-air foot-rests did
not quite compensate for the deathly iciness of the breath that
began to stream down from the Alps, which the ship was now
approaching at a slight incline. It was necessary to rise at
least nine thousand feet from the usual level, in order to pass
the frontier of the Mont Cenis at a safe angle; and at the same
time it was necessary to go a little slower over the Alps
themselves, owing to the extreme rarity of the air, and the
difficulty in causing the screw to revolve sufficiently quickly
to counteract it.
"There will be clouds to-night," said a voice clear and
distinct from the passage, as the door swung slightly to a
movement of the car.
Percy got up and closed it.
The German Cardinal began to grow a little fidgety towards
the end of dinner.
"I shall go back," he said at last. "I shall be better in my
fur rug."
His chaplain dutifully went after him, leaving his own dinner
unfinished, and Percy was left alone with Father Corkran, his
English chaplain lately from Scotland.
He finished his wine, ate a couple of figs, and then sat
staring out through the plate-glass window in front.
"Ah!" he said. "Excuse me, father. There are the Alps at
last."
The front of the car consisted of three divisions, in the
centre of one of which stood the steersman, his eyes looking
straight ahead, and his hands upon the wheel. On either side of
him, separated from him by aluminium walls, was contrived a
narrow slip of a compartment, with a long curved window at the
height of a man's eyes, through which a magnificent view could
be obtained. It was to one of these that Percy went, passing
along the corridor, and seeing through half-opened doors other
parties still over their wine. He pushed the spring door on the
left and went through.
He had crossed the Alps three times before in his life, and
well remembered the extraordinary effect they had had on him,
especially as he had once seen them from a great altitude upon
a clear day--an eternal, immeasurable sea of white ice, broken
by hummocks and wrinkles that from below were soaring peaks
named and reverenced; and, beyond, the spherical curve of the
earth's edge that dropped in a haze of air into unutterable
space. But this time they seemed more amazing than ever, and
he looked out on them with the interest of a sick child.
The car was now ascending rapidly towards the pass up across
the huge tumbled slopes, ravines, and cliffs that lie like
outworks of the enormous wall. Seen from this great height
they were in themselves comparatively insignificant, but they
at least suggested the vastness of the bastions of which they
were no more than buttresses. As Percy turned, he could see the
moonless sky alight with frosty stars, and the dimness of the
illumination made the scene even more impressive; but as he
turned again, there was a change. The vast air about him seemed
now to be perceived through frosted glass. The velvet blackness
of the pine forests had faded to heavy grey, the pale glint of
water and ice seen and gone again in a moment, the monstrous
nakedness of rock spires and slopes, rising towards him and
sliding away again beneath with a crawling motion--all these
had lost their distinctness of outline, and were veiled in
invisible white. As he looked yet higher to right and left the
sight became terrifying, for the giant walls of rock rushing
towards him, the huge grotesque shapes towering on all sides,
ran upward into a curtain of cloud visible only from the
dancing radiance thrown upon it by the brilliantly lighted car.
Even as he looked, two straight fingers of splendour,
resembling horns, shot out, as the bow searchlights were turned
on; and the car itself, already travelling at half-speed, dropped
to quarter-speed, and began to sway softly from side to side as
the huge air-planes beat the mist through which they moved,
and the antennæ of light pierced it. Still up they went, and on
--yet swift enough to let Percy see one great pinnacle rear
itself, elongate, sink down into a cruel needle, and vanish into
nothingness a thousand feet below. The motion grew yet more
nauseous, as the car moved up at a sharp angle preserving its
level, simultaneously rising, advancing and swaying. Once,
hoarse and sonorous, an unfrozen torrent roared like a beast, it
seemed within twenty yards, and was dumb again on the instant.
Now, too, the horns began to cry, long, lamentable hootings,
ringing sadly in that echoing desolation like the wail of
wandering souls; and as Percy, awed beyond feeling, wiped the
gathering moisture from the glass, and stared again, it appeared
as if he floated now, motionless except for the slight rocking
beneath his feet, in a world of whiteness, as remote from earth
as from heaven, poised in hopeless infinite space, blind, alone,
frozen, lost in a white hell of desolation.
Once, as he stared, a huge whiteness moved towards him
through the veil, slid slowly sideways and down, disclosing, as
the car veered, a gigantic slope smooth as oil, with one cluster
of black rock cutting it like the fingers of a man's hand
groping from a mountainous wave.
Then, as once more the car cried aloud like a lost sheep,
there answered it, it seemed scarcely ten yards away, first one
windy scream of dismay, another and another; a clang of bells,
a chorus broke out; and the air was full of the beating of
wings.
(IV)
There was one horrible instant before a clang of a bell, the
answering scream, and a whirling motion showed that the
steersman was alert. Then like a stone the car dropped, and
Percy clutched at the rail before him to steady the terrible
sensation of falling into emptiness. He could hear behind him
the crash of crockery, the bumping of heavy bodies, and as the
car again checked on its wide wings, a rush of footsteps broke
out and a cry or two of dismay. Outside, but high and far away,
the hooting went on; the air was full of it, and in a flash he
recognised that it could not be one or ten or twenty cars, but
at least a hundred that had answered the call, and that
somewhere overhead were hooting and flapping. The invisible
ravines and cliffs on all sides took up the crying; long wails
whooped and moaned and died amid a clash of bells, further and
further every instant, but now in every direction, behind, above,
in front, and far to right and left. Once more the car began to
move, sinking in a long still curve towards the face of the
mountain; and as it checked, and began to sway again on its huge
wings, he turned to the door, seeing as he did so, through the
cloudy windows in the glow of light a spire of rock not thirty
feet below rising from the mist, and one smooth shoulder of
snow curving away into invisibility.
Within, the car shewed brutal signs of the sudden check: the
doors of the dining compartments, as he passed along, were
flung wide; glasses, plates, pools of wine and tumbled fruit,
rolled to and fro on the heaving floors; one man, sitting
helplessly on the ground, rolled vacant, terrified eyes upon the
priest. He glanced in at the door through which he had come
just now, and Father Corkran staggered up from his seat and
came towards him, reeling at the motion underfoot;
simultaneously there was a rush from the opposite door, where
a party of Americans had been dining; and as Percy, beckoning
with his head, turned again to go down to the stern-end of the
ship, he found the narrow passage blocked with the crowd that
had run out. A babble of talking and cries made questions
impossible; and Percy, with his chaplain behind him, gripped
the aluminium panelling, and step by step began to make his
way in search of his friends.
Half-way down the passage, as he pushed and struggled, a voice
made itself heard above the din; and in the momentary silence
that followed, again sounded the far-away crying of the volors
overhead.
"Seats, gentlemen, seats," roared the voice. "We are moving
immediately."
Then the crowd melted as the conductor came through, red-
faced and determined, and Percy, springing into his wake, found
his way clear to the stern.
The Cardinal seemed none the worse. He had been asleep, he
explained, and saved himself in time from rolling on to the
floor; but his old face twitched as he talked.
"But what is it?" he said. "What is the meaning?"
Father Bechlin related how he had actually seen one of the
troop of volors within five yards of the window; it was crowded
with faces, he said, from stem to stern. Then it had soared
suddenly, and vanished in whorls of mist.
Percy shook his head, saying nothing. He had no explanation.
"They are enquiring, I understand," said Father Bechlin again.
"The conductor was at his instrument just now."
There was nothing to be seen from the windows now. Only, as
Percy stared out, still dazed with the shock, he saw the cruel
needle of rock wavering beneath as if seen through water, and
the huge shoulder of snow swaying softly up and down. It was
quieter outside. It appeared that the flock had passed, only
somewhere from an infinite height still sounded a fitful
wailing, as if a lonely bird were wandering, lost in space.
"That is the signalling volor," murmured Percy to himself.
He had no theory--no suggestion. Yet the matter seemed an
ominous one. It was unheard of that an encounter with a hundred
volors should take place, and he wondered why they were going
southwards. Again the name of Felsenburgh came to his mind.
What if that sinister man were still somewhere overhead?
"Eminence," began the old man again. But at that instant the
car began to move.
A bell clanged, a vibration tingled underfoot, and then, soft
as a flake of snow, the great ship began to rise, its movement
perceptible only by the sudden drop and, vanishing of the spire
of rock at which Percy still stared. Slowly the snowfield too
began to flit downwards, a black cleft whisked smoothly into
sight from above, and disappeared again below, and a moment
later once more the car seemed poised in white space as it
climbed the slope of air down which it had dropped just now.
Again the wind-chord rent the atmosphere; and this time the
answer was as faint and distant as a cry from another world.
The speed quickened, and the steady throb of the screw began to
replace the swaying motion of the wings. Again came the hoot,
wild and echoing through the barren wilderness of rock walls
beneath, and again with a sudden impulse the car soared. It was
going in great circles now, cautious as a cat, climbing,
climbing, punctuating the ascent with cry after cry, searching
the blind air for dangers. Once again a vast white slope came
into sight, illuminated by the glare from the windows, sinking
ever more and more swiftly, receding and approaching--until for
one instant a jagged line of rocks grinned like teeth through
the mist, dropped away and vanished, and with a clash of bells,
and a last scream of warning, the throb of the screw passed
from a whirr to a rising note, and the note to stillness, as the
huge ship, clear at last of the frontier peaks, shook out her
wings steady once more, and set out for her humming flight
through space. . . . Whatever it was, was behind them now,
vanished into the thick night.
There was a sound of talking from the interior of the car,
hasty, breathless voices, questioning, exclaiming, and the
authoritative terse answer of the guard. A step came along
outside, and Percy sprang to meet it, but, as he laid his hand
on the door, it was pushed from without, and to his
astonishment the English guard came straight through, closing
it behind him.
He stood there, looking strangely at the four priests, with
compressed lips and anxious eyes.
"Well?" cried Percy.
"All right, gentlemen. But I'm thinking you'd better descend
at Paris. I know who you are, gentlemen--and though I'm not a
Catholic----"
He stopped again.
"For God's sake, man----" began Percy.
"Oh! the news, gentlemen. Well, it was two hundred cars going
to Rome. There is a Catholic plot, sir, discovered in
London----"
IT was nearly sixteen o'clock on the same day, the last day of
the year, that Mabel went into the little church that stood in
the street beneath her house.
The dark was falling softly layer on layer; across the roofs
to westward burned the smouldering fire of the winter sunset,
and the interior was full of the dying light.
She had slept a little in her chair that afternoon, and had
awakened with that strange cleansed sense of spirit and mind
that sometimes follows such sleep. She wondered later how she
could have slept at such a time, and above all, how it was that
she had perceived nothing of that cloud of fear and fury that
even now was falling over town and country alike. She
remembered afterwards an unusual busyness on the broad tracks
beneath her as she had looked out on them from her windows,
and an unusual calling of horns and whistles; but she thought
nothing of it, and passed down an hour later for a meditation
in the church.
She had grown to love the quiet place, and came in often like
this to steady her thoughts and concentrate them on the
significance that lay beneath the surface of life,--the huge
principles upon which all lived, and which so plainly were the
true realities. Indeed, such devotion was becoming almost
recognised amongst certain classes of people. Addresses were
delivered now and then; little books were being published as
guides to the interior life, curiously resembling the old
Catholic books on mental prayer.
She went to-day to her usual seat, sat down, folded her hands,
looked for a minute or two upon the old stone sanctuary, the
white image and the darkening window. Then she closed her eyes
and began to think, according to the method she followed.
First she concentrated her attention on herself, detaching it
from all that was merely external and transitory, withdrawing
it inwards . . . inwards, until she found that secret spark which,
beneath all frailties and activities, made her a substantial
member of the divine race of humankind.
This then was the first step.
The second consisted in an act of the intellect followed by
one of the imagination. All men possessed that spark, she
considered. . . . Then she sent out her powers, sweeping with
the eyes of her mind the seething world, seeing beneath the
light and dark of the two hemispheres, the countless millions
of mankind--children coming into the world, old men leaving
it, the mature rejoicing in it and their own strength. Back
through the ages she looked, through those centuries of crime
and blindness, as the race rose through savagery and
superstition to a knowledge of themselves; on through the ages
yet to come, as generation followed generation to some climax
whose perfection, she told herself, she could not fully
comprehend because she was not of it. Yet, she told herself
again, that climax had already been born; the birthpangs were
over; for had not He come who was the heir of time? . . .
Then by a third and vivid act she realized the unity of all,
the central fire of which each spark was but a radiation--that
vast passionless divine being, realizing Himself up through
these centuries, one yet many, Him whom men had called God,
now no longer unknown, but recognised as the transcendent total
of themselves--Him who now, with the coming of the new
Saviour, had stirred and awakened and shown Himself as One.
And there she stayed, contemplating the vision of her mind,
detaching now this virtue, now that for particular assimilation,
dwelling on her deficiencies, seeing in the whole the fulfilment
of all aspirations, the sum of all for which men had hoped--
that Spirit of Peace, so long hindered yet generated too
perpetually by the passions of the world, forced into outline
and being by the energy of individual lives, realizing itself in
pulse after pulse, dominant at last, serene, manifest and
triumphant. There she stayed, losing the sense of individuality,
merging it by a long sustained effort of the will, drinking, as
she thought, long breaths of the spirit of life and love. . . .
Some sound, she supposed afterwards, disturbed her, and she
opened her eyes; and there before her lay the quiet pavement,
glimmering through the dusk, the step of the sanctuary, the
rostrum on the right, and the peaceful spate of darkening air
above the white Mother-figure and against the tracery of the old
window. It was here that men had worshipped Jesus, that blood-
stained Man of Sorrow, who had borne, even on His own
confession, not peace but a sword. Yet they had knelt, those
blind and hopeless Christians. . . . Ah! the pathos of it all,
the despairing acceptance of any creed that would account for
sorrow, the wild worship of any God who had claimed to bear it!
And again came the sound, striking across her peace, though
as yet she did not understand why.
It was nearer now; and she turned in astonishment to look
down the dusky nave.
It was from without that the sound had come, that strange
murmur, that rose and fell again as she listened.
She stood up, her heart quickening a little--only once before
had she heard such a sound, once before, in a square, where men
raged about a point beneath a platform. . . .
She stepped swiftly out of her seat, passed down the aisle,
drew back the curtains beneath the west window, lifted the latch
and stepped out.
* * * * * *
The street, from where she looked over the railings that
barred the entrance to the church, seemed unusually empty and
dark. To right and left stretched the houses, overhead the
darkening sky was flushed with rose; but it seemed as if the
public lights had been forgotten. There was not a living being
to be seen.
She had put her hand on the latch of the gate, to open it and
go out, when a sudden patter of footsteps made her hesitate;
and the next instant a child appeared panting, breathless and
terrified, running with her hands before her.
"They're coming, they're coming," sobbed the child, seeing
the face looking at her. Then she clung to the bars, staring
over her shoulder.
Mabel lifted the latch in an instant; the child sprang in, ran
to the door and beat against it, then turning, seized her dress
and cowered against her. Mabel shut the gate.
"There, there," she said. "Who is it? Who are coming?"
But the child hid her face, drawing at the kindly skirts; and
the next moment came the roar of voices and the trampling of
footsteps.
* * * * * *
It was not more than a few seconds before the heralds of
that grim procession came past. First came a flying squadron
of children, laughing, terrified, fascinated, screaming, turning
their heads as they ran, with a dog or two yelping amongst
them, and a few women drifting sideways along the pavements. A
face of a man, Mabel saw as she glanced in terror upwards, had
appeared at the windows opposite, pale and eager--some invalid
no doubt dragging himself to see. One group--a well-dressed
man in grey, a couple of women carrying babies, a solemn-faced
boy--halted immediately before her on the other side of the
railings, all talking, none listening, and these too turned their
faces to the road on the left, up which every instant the
clamour and trampling grew. Yet she could not ask. Her lips
moved; but no sound came from them. She was one incarnate
apprehension. Across her intense fixity moved pictures of no
importance--of Oliver as he had been at breakfast, of her own
bedroom with its softened paper, of the dark sanctuary and the
white figure on which she had looked just now.
They were coming thicker now; a troop of young men with
their arms linked swayed into sight, all talking or crying
aloud, none listening--all across the roadway, and behind them
surged the crowd, like a wave in a stone-fenced channel, male
scarcely distinguishable from female in that pack of faces, and
under that sky that grew darker every instant. Except for the
noise, which Mabel now hardly noticed, so thick and incessant it
was, so complete her concentration in the sense of sight--
except for that, it might have been, from its suddenness and
overwhelming force, some mob of phantoms trooping on a
sudden out of some vista of the spiritual world visible across
an open space, and about to vanish again in obscurity. That
empty street was full now on this side and that so far as she
could see; the young men were gone--running or walking she
hardly knew--round the corner to the right, and the entire
space was one stream of heads and faces, pressing so fiercely
that the group at the railings were detached like weeds and
drifted too, sideways, clutching at the bars, and swept away too
and vanished. And all the while the child tugged and tore at her
skirts.
Certain things began to appear now above the heads of the
crowd--objects she could not distinguish in the failing light--
poles, and fantastic shapes, fragments of stuff resembling
banners, moving as if alive, turning from side to side, borne
from beneath.
Faces, distorted with passion, looked at her from time to
time as the moving show went past, open mouths cried at her;
but she hardly saw them. She was watching those strange
emblems, straining her eyes through the dusk, striving to
distinguish the battered broken shapes, half-guessing, yet afraid
to guess.
Then, on a sudden, from the hidden lamps beneath the eaves,
light leapt into being--that strong, sweet, familiar light,
generated by the great engines underground that, in the passion
of that catastrophic day, all men had forgotten; and in a
moment all changed from a mob of phantoms and shapes into a
pitiless reality of life and death.
Before her moved a great rood, with a figure upon it, of
which one arm hung from the nailed hand, swinging as it went;
an embroidery streamed behind with the swiftness of the
motion.
And next after it came the naked body of a child, impaled,
white and ruddy, the head fallen upon the breast, and the arms,
too, dangling and turning.
And next the figure of a man, hanging by the neck, dressed, it
seemed, in a kind of black gown and cape, with its black-capped
head twisting from the twisting rope.
(II)
The same night Oliver Brand came home about an hour before
midnight.
For himself, what he had heard and seen that day was still
too vivid and too imminent for him to judge of it coolly. He
had seen, from his windows in Whitehall, Parliament Square
filled with a mob the like of which had not been known in
England since the days of Christianity--a mob full of a fury
that could scarcely draw its origin except from sources beyond
the reach of sense. Thrice during the hours that followed the
publication of the Catholic plot and the outbreak of mob-law
he had communicated with the Prime Minister asking whether
nothing could be done to allay the tumult; and on both
occasions he had received the doubtful answer that what could
be done would be done, that force was inadmissible at present;
but that the police were doing all that was possible.
As regarded the despatch of the volors to Rome, he had
assented by silence, as had the rest of the Council. That was,
Snowford had said, a judicial punitive act, regrettable but
necessary. Peace, in this instance, could not be secured except
on terms of war--or rather, since war was obsolete--by the
sternness of justice. These Catholics had shown themselves the
avowed enemies of society; very well, then Society must defend
itself, at least this once. Man was still human. And Oliver had
listened and said nothing.
As he passed in one of the Government volors over London on
his way home, he had caught more than one glimpse of what was
proceeding beneath him. The streets were as bright as day,
shadowless and clear in the white light, and every roadway was a
crawling serpent. From beneath rose up a steady roar of voices,
soft and woolly, punctuated by cries. From here and there
ascended the smoke of burning; and once, as he flitted over one
of the great squares to the south of Battersea, he had seen as
it were a scattered squadron of ants running as if in fear or
pursuit. . . . He knew what was happening. . . . Well, after all,
man was not yet perfectly civilised.
He did not like to think of what awaited him at home. Once,
about five hours earlier, he had listened to his wife's voice
through the telephone, and what he had heard had nearly caused
him to leave all and go to her. Yet he was scarcely prepared
for what he found.
As he came into the sitting-room, there was no sound, except
that far-away hum from the seething streets below. The room
seemed strangely dark and cold; the only light that entered was
through one of the windows from which the curtains were
withdrawn, and, silhouetted against the luminous sky beyond, was
the upright figure of a woman, looking and listening. . . .
He pressed the knob of the electric light; and Mabel turned
slowly towards him. She was in her day-dress, with a cloak
thrown over her shoulders, and her face was almost as that of a
stranger. It was perfectly colourless, her lips were compressed
and her eyes full of an emotion which he could not interpret.
It might equally have been anger, terror or misery.
She stood there in the steady light, motionless, looking at
him.
For a moment he did not trust himself to speak. He passed
across to the window, closed it and drew the curtains. Then he
took that rigid figure gently by the arm.
"Mabel," he said, "Mabel."
She submitted to be drawn towards the sofa, but there was no
response to his touch. He sat down and looked up at her with a
kind of despairing apprehension.
"My dear, I am tired out," he said.
Still she looked at him. There was in her pose that rigidity
that actors simulate; yet he knew it for the real thing. He had
seen that silence once or twice before in the presence of a
horror--once at any rate, at the sight of a splash of blood on
her shoe.
"Well, my darling, sit down, at least," he said.
She obeyed him mechanically--sat, and still stared on him.
In the silence once more that soft roar rose and died from the
invisible world of tumult outside the windows. Within here all
was quiet. He knew perfectly that two things strove within her,
her loyalty to her faith and her hatred of those crimes in the
name of justice. As he looked on her he saw that these two were
at death grips, that hatred was prevailing, and that she herself
was little more than a passive battlefield. Then, as with a long
drawn howl of a wolf, there surged and sank the voices of the
mob a mile away, the tension broke. . . . She threw herself
forward towards him, he caught her by the wrists, and so she
rested, clasped in his arms, her face and bosom on his knees,
and her whole body torn by emotion.
For a full minute neither spoke. Oliver understood well
enough, yet at present he had no words. He only drew her a
little closer to himself, kissed her hair two or three times,
and settled himself to hold her. He began to rehearse what he
must say presently.
Then she raised her flushed face for an instant, looked at
him passionately, dropped her head again and began to sob out
broken words.
He could only catch a sentence here and there, yet he knew
what she was saying.
It was the ruin of all her hopes, she sobbed, the end of her
religion. Let her die, die and have done with it! It was all gone,
gone, swept away in this murderous passion of the people of her
faith . . . they were no better than Christians, after all, as
fierce as the men on whom they avenged themselves, as dark as
though the Saviour, Julian, had never come; it was all lost . . .
War and Passion and Murder had returned to the body from which
she had thought them gone for ever. . . . The burning churches,
the hunted Catholics, the raging of the streets on which she had
looked that day, the bodies of the child and the priest carried
on poles, the burning churches and convents. . . . All streamed
out, incoherent, broken by sobs, details of horror,
lamentations, reproaches, interpreted by the writhing of her
head and hands upon his knees. The collapse was complete.
He put his hands again beneath her arms and raised her. He
was worn out by his work, yet he knew he must quiet her. This
was more serious than any previous crisis. Yet he knew her
power of recovery.
"Sit down my darling," he said. "There . . . give me your
hands. Now listen to me."
* * * * * *
He made really an admirable defence, for it was what he had
been repeating to himself all day.
Men were not yet perfect, he said; there ran in their veins
the blood of men who for twenty centuries had been Christians.
. . . There must be no despair; faith in man was of the very
essence of religion, faith in man's best self, in what he would
become, not in what at present he actually was. They were at
the beginning of the new religion, not in its maturity; there
must be sourness in the young fruit. . . . Consider, too, the
provocation! Remember the appalling crime that these
Catholics had contemplated; they had set themselves to strike
the new Faith in its very heart. . . .
"My darling," he said, "men are not changed in an instant.
What if those Christians had succeeded! . . . I condemn it all as
strongly as you. I saw a couple of newspapers this afternoon
that are as wicked as anything that the Christians have ever
done. They exulted in all these crimes. It will throw the
movement back ten years. . . . Do you think that there are not
thousands like yourself who hate and detest this violence? . . .
But what does faith mean, except that we know that mercy will
prevail? Faith, patience and hope--these are our weapons."
He spoke with passionate conviction, his eyes fixed on hers,
in a fierce endeavour to give her his own confidence, and to
reassure the remnants of his own doubtfulness. It was true that
he too hated what she hated, yet he saw things that she did not.
. . . Well, well, he told himself, he must remember that she
was a woman.
The look of frantic horror passed slowly out of her eyes,
giving way to acute misery as he talked, and as his personality
once more began to dominate her own. But it was not yet over.
"But the volors," she cried, "the volors! That is deliberate;
that is not the work of the mob."
"My darling, it is no more deliberate than the other. We are
all human, we are all immature. Yes, the Council permitted it,
. . . permitted it, remember. The German Government, too, had
to yield. We must tame nature slowly, we must not break it."
He talked again for a few minutes, repeating his arguments,
soothing, reassuring, encouraging; and he saw that he was
beginning to prevail. But she returned to one of his words.
"Permitted it! And you permitted it."
"Dear; I said nothing, either for it or against. I tell you
that if we had forbidden it there would have been yet more
murder, and the people would have lost their rulers. We were
passive, since we could do nothing."
"Ah! but it would have been better to die. . . . Oh! Oliver,
let me die at least! I cannot bear it."
By her hands which he still held he drew her nearer yet to
himself.
"Sweetheart," he said gravely, "cannot you trust me a little?
If I could tell you all that passed to-day, you would understand.
But trust me that I am not heartless. And what of Julian
Felsenburgh?"
For a moment he saw hesitation in her eyes; her loyalty to
him and her loathing of all that had happened strove within
her. Then once again loyalty prevailed, the name of Felsenburgh
weighed down the balance, and trust came back with a flood of
tears.
"Oh, Oliver," she said, "I know I trust you. But I am so weak,
and all is so terrible. And He so strong and merciful. And will
He be with us to-morrow?"
* * * * * *
It struck midnight from the clock-tower a mile away as they
yet sat and talked. She was still tremulous from the struggle;
but she looked at him smiling, still holding his hands. He saw
that the reaction was upon her in full force at last.
"The New Year, my husband," she said, and rose as she said it,
drawing him after her.
"I wish you a happy New Year," she said. "Oh help me, Oliver."
She kissed him, and drew back, still holding his hands,
looking at him with bright tearful eyes.
"Oliver," she cried again, "I must tell you this. . . . Do you
know what I thought before you came?"
He shook his head, staring at her greedily. How sweet she was!
He felt her grip tighten on his hands.
"I thought I could not bear it," she whispered--"that I must
end it all--ah! you know what I mean."
His heart flinched as he heard her; and he drew her closer
again to himself.
"It is all over! it is all over," she cried. "Ah! do not look
like that! I could not tell you if it was not."
As their lips met again there came the vibration of an
electric bell from the next room, and Oliver, knowing what it
meant, felt even in that instant a tremor shake his heart. He
loosed her hands, and still smiled at her.
"The bell!" she said, with a flash of apprehension.
"But it is all well between us again?"
Her face steadied itself into loyalty and confidence.
"It is all well," she said; and again the impatient bell
tingled. "Go, Oliver; I will wait here."
A minute later he was back again, with a strange look on his
white face, and his lips compressed. He came straight up to her,
taking her once more by the hands, and looking steadily into
her steady eyes. In the hearts of both of them resolve and faith
were holding down the emotion that was not yet dead. He drew a
long breath.
"Yes," he said in an even voice, "it is over."
Her lips moved; and that deadly paleness lay on her cheeks.
He gripped her firmly.
"Listen," he said. "You must face it. It is over. Rome is
gone. Now we must build something better."
LONG before dawn on the first morning of the New Year the
approaches to the Abbey were already blocked. Victoria Street,
Great George Street, Whitehall--even Millbank Street itself--
were full and motionless. Broad Sanctuary, divided by the low-
walled motor-track, was itself cut into great blocks and wedges
of people by the ways which the police kept open for the
passage of important personages, and Palace Yard was kept
rigidly clear except for one island, occupied by a stand which
was itself full from top to bottom and end to end. All roofs
and parapets which commanded a view of the Abbey were also one
mass of heads. Overhead, like solemn moons, burned the white
lights of the electric globes.
It was not known at exactly what hour the tumult had
steadied itself to definite purpose, except to a few weary
controllers of the temporary turnstiles which had been erected
the evening before. It had been announced a week previously
that, in consideration of the enormous demand for seats, all
persons who presented their worship-ticket at an authorised
office, and followed the directions issued by the police, would
be accounted as having fulfilled the duties of citizenship in
that respect, and it was generally made known that it was the
Government's intention to toll the great bell of the Abbey at
the beginning of the ceremony and at the incensing of the
image, during which period silence must be as far as possible
preserved by all those within hearing.
London had gone completely mad on the announcement of the
Catholic plot on the afternoon before. The secret had leaked
out about fourteen o'clock, an hour after the betrayal of the
scheme to Mr. Snowford; and practically all commercial
activities had ceased on the instant. By fifteen-and-a-half all
stores were closed, the Stock Exchange, the City offices, the
West End establishments--all had as by irresistible impulse
suspended business, and from within two hours after noon until
nearly midnight, when the police had been adequately reinforced
and enabled to deal with the situation, whole mobs and armies
of men, screaming squadrons of women, troops of frantic youths,
had paraded the streets, howling, denouncing, and murdering. It
was not known how many deaths had taken place, but there was
scarcely a street without the signs of outrage. Westminster
Cathedral had been sacked, every altar overthrown, indescribable
indignities performed there. An unknown priest had scarcely
been able to consume the Blessed Sacrament before he was
seized and throttled; the Archbishop with eleven priests and
two bishops had been hanged at the north end of the church,
thirty-five convents had been destroyed, St. George's Cathedral
burned to the ground; and it was reported even, by the evening
papers, that it was believed that, for the first time since the
introduction of Christianity into England, there was not one
Tabernacle left within twenty miles of the Abbey. "London,"
explained the New People, in huge headlines, "was cleansed at
last of dingy and fantastic nonsense."
It was known at about fifteen-and-a-half o'clock that at least
seventy volors had left for Rome, and half-an-hour later that
Berlin had reinforced them by sixty more. At midnight,
fortunately at a time when the police had succeeded in
shepherding the crowds into some kind of order, the news was
flashed on to cloud and placard alike that the grim work was
done, and that Rome had ceased to exist. The early morning
papers added a few details, pointing out, of course, the
coincidence of the fall with the close of the year, relating how,
by an astonishing chance, practically all the heads of the
hierarchy throughout the world had been assembled in the
Vatican which had been the first object of attack, and how
these, in desperation, it was supposed, had refused to leave the
City when the news came by wireless telegraphy that the
punitive force was on its way. There was not a building left in
Rome; the entire place, Leonine City, Trastevere, suburbs--
everything was gone; for the volors, poised at an immense
height, had parcelled out the City beneath them with extreme
care, before beginning to drop the explosives; and five minutes
after the first roar from beneath and the first burst of smoke
and flying fragments, the thing was finished. The volors had
then dispersed in every direction, pursuing the motor and rail-
tracks along which the population had attempted to escape so
soon as the news was known; and it was supposed that not less
than thirty thousand belated fugitives had been annihilated by
this foresight. It was true, remarked the Studio, that many
treasures of incalculable value had been destroyed, but this was
a cheap price to pay for the final and complete extermination
of the Catholic pest. "There comes a point," it remarked, "when
destruction is the only cure for a vermin-infested house," and
it proceeded to observe that now that the Pope with the entire
College of Cardinals, all the ex-Royalties of Europe, all the
most frantic religionists from the inhabited world who had
taken up their abode in the "Holy City" were gone at a stroke, a
recrudescence of the superstition was scarcely to be feared
elsewhere. Yet care must even now be taken against any
relenting. Catholics (if any were left bold enough to attempt
it) must no longer be allowed to take any kind of part in the
life of any civilized country. So far as messages had come in
from other countries, there was but one chorus of approval at
what had been done.
A few papers regretted the incident, or rather the spirit
which had lain behind it. It was not seemly, they said, that
Humanitarians should have recourse to violence; yet not one
pretended that anything could be felt but thanksgiving for the
general result. Ireland, too, must be brought into line; they
must not dally any longer.
* * * * * *
It was now brightening slowly towards dawn, and beyond the
river through the faint wintry haze a crimson streak or two
began to burn. But all was surprisingly quiet, for this crowd,
tired out with an all-night watch, chilled by the bitter cold,
and intent on what lay before them, had no energy left for
useless effort. Only from packed square and street and lane
went up a deep, steady murmur like the sound of the sea a mile
away, broken now and again by the hoot and clang of a motor and
the rush of its passage as it tore eastwards round the circle
through Broad Sanctuary and vanished citywards. And the light
broadened and the electric globes sickened and paled, and the
haze began to clear a little, showing, not the fresh blue that
had been hoped for from the cold of the night, but a high,
colourless vault of cloud, washed with grey and faint rose-
colour, as the sun came up, a ruddy copper disc, beyond the
river.
* * * * * *
At nine o'clock the excitement rose a degree higher. The
police between Whitehall and the Abbey, looking from their
high platforms strung along the route, whence they kept watch
and controlled the wire palisadings, showed a certain activity,
and a minute later a police-car whirled through the square
between the palings, and vanished round the Abbey towers. The
crowd murmured and shuffled and began to expect, and a cheer
was raised when a moment later four more cars appeared,
bearing the Government insignia, and disappeared in the same
direction. These were the officials, they said, going to Dean's
Yard, where the procession would assemble.
At about a quarter to ten the crowd at the west end of
Victoria Street began to raise its voice in a song, and by the
time that was over, and the bells had burst out from the Abbey
towers, a rumour had somehow made its entrance that
Felsenburgh was to be present at the ceremony. There was no
assignable reason for this, neither then nor afterwards; in fact,
the Evening Star declared that it was one more instance of the
astonishing instinct of human beings en masse; for it was not
until an hour later that even the Government were made aware
of the facts. Yet the truth remained that at half-past ten one
continuous roar went up, drowning even the brazen clamour of
the bells, reaching round to Whitehall and the crowded
pavements of Westminster Bridge, demanding Julian Felsenburgh.
Yet there had been absolutely no news of the President of
Europe for the last fortnight, beyond an entirely unsupported
report that he was somewhere in the East.
And all the while the motors poured from all directions
towards the Abbey and disappeared under the arch into Dean's
Yard, bearing those fortunate persons whose tickets actually
admitted them to the church itself. Cheers ran and rippled
along the lines as the great men were recognised--Lord
Pemberton, Oliver Brand and his wife, Mr. Caldecott, Maxwell,
Snowford, with the European delegates--even melancholy-faced
Mr. Francis himself, the Government ceremoniarius, received a
greeting. But by a quarter to eleven, when the pealing bells
paused, the stream had stopped, the barriers issued out to stop
the roads, the wire palisadings vanished, and the crowd for an
instant, ceasing its roaring, sighed with relief at the relaxed
pressure, and surged out into the roadways. Then once more the
roaring began for Julian Felsenburgh.
The sun was now high, still a copper disc, above the Victoria
Tower, but paler than an hour ago; the whiteness of the Abbey,
the heavy greys of Parliament House, the ten thousand tints of
house-roofs, heads, streamers, placards began to disclose
themselves.
A single bell tolled five minutes to the hour and the
moments slipped by, until once more the bell stopped, and to
the ears of those within hearing of the great west doors came
the first blare of the huge organ, reinforced by trumpets. And
then, as sudden and profound as the hush of death, there fell an
enormous silence.
(II)
As the five-minutes bell began, sounding like a continuous
wind-note in the great vaults overhead, solemn and persistent,
Mabel drew a long breath and leaned back in her seat from the
rigid position in which for the last half-hour she had been
staring out at the wonderful sight. She seemed to herself to
have assimilated it at last, to be herself once more, to have
drunk her fill of the triumph and the beauty. She was as one
who looks upon a summer sea on the morning after a storm. And
now the climax was at hand.
From end to end and side to side the interior of the Abbey
presented a great broken mosaic of human faces; living slopes,
walls, sections and curves. The south transept directly opposite
to her, from pavement to rose window, was one sheet of heads;
the floor was paved with them, cut in two by the scarlet of the
gangway leading from the chapel of St. Faith--on the right, the
choir beyond the open space before the sanctuary was a mass of
white figures, scarved and surpliced; the high organ gallery,
beneath which the screen had been removed, was crowded with
them, and, far down beneath, the dim nave stretched the same
endless pale living pavement to the shadow beneath the west
window. Between every group of columns behind the choir-stalls,
before her, to right, left, and behind, were platforms contrived
in the masonry; and the exquisite roof, fan-tracery and soaring
capital, alone gave the eye an escape from humanity. The whole
vast space was full, it seemed, of delicate sunlight that
streamed in from the artificial light set outside each window,
and poured the ruby and the purple and the blue from the old
glass in long shafts of colour across the dusty air, and in
broken patches on the faces and dresses behind. The murmur of
ten thousand voices filled the place, supplying, it seemed, a
solemn accompaniment to that melodious note that now pulsed
above it. And finally, more significant than all was the empty
carpeted sanctuary at her feet, the enormous altar with its
flight of steps, the gorgeous curtain and the great untenanted
sedilia.
* * * * * *
Mabel needed some such reassurance, for last night, until the
coming of Oliver, had passed for her as a kind of appalling
waking dream. From the first shock of what she had seen outside
the church, through those hours of waiting, with the knowledge
that this was the way in which the Spirit of Peace asserted its
superiority, up to that last moment when, in her husband's
arms she had learned of the Fall of Rome, it had appeared to
her as if her new world had suddenly corrupted about her. It was
incredible, she told herself, that this ravening monster,
dripping blood from claws and teeth, that had arisen roaring in
the night, could be the Humanity that had become her God. She
had thought revenge and cruelty and slaughter to be the brood
of Christian superstition, dead and buried under the new-born
angel of light, and now it seemed that the monsters yet stirred
and lived. All the evening she had sat, walked, lain about her
quiet house with the horror heavy about her, flinging open a
window now and again in the icy air to listen with clenched
hands to the cries and the roarings of the mob that raged in
the streets beneath, the clanks, the yells and the hoots of the
motor-trains that tore up from the country to swell the frenzy
of the city--to watch the red glow of fire, the volumes of
smoke that heaved up from the burning chapels and convents.
She had questioned, doubted, resisted her doubts, flung out
frantic acts of faith, attempted to renew the confidence that
she attained in her meditation, told herself that traditions
died slowly; she had knelt, crying out to the spirit of peace
that lay, as she knew so well, at the heart of man, though
overwhelmed for the moment by evil passion. A line or two ran
in her head from one of the old Victorian poets:
You doubt
If anyone
Could think or bid it?
How could it come about? . . .
Who did it?
Not men! Not here!
Oh! not beneath the sun. . . .
. . . The torch that smouldered till the cup o'er-ran
The wrath of God which is the wrath of Man!
She had even contemplated death, as she had told her husband
--the taking of her own life, in a great despair with the world.
Seriously she had thought of it; it was an escape perfectly in
accord with her morality. The useless and agonizing were put
out of the world by common consent; the Euthanasia houses
witnessed to it. Then why not she? . . . For she could not bear
it! . . . Then Oliver had come, she had fought her way back to
sanity and confidence; and the phantom had gone again.
How sensible and quiet he had been, she was beginning to tell
herself now, as the quiet influence of this huge throng in this
glorious place of worship possessed her once more--how
reasonable in his explanation that man was even now only
convalescent and therefore liable to relapse. She had told
herself that again and again during the night, but it had been
different when he had said so. His personality had once more
prevailed; and the name of Felsenburgh had finished the work.
"If He were but here!" she sighed. But she knew He was far
away.
* * * * * *
It was not until a quarter to eleven that she understood that
the crowds outside were clamouring for him too, and that
knowledge reassured her yet further. They knew, then, these wild
tigers, where their redemption lay; they understood what was
their ideal, even if they had not attained to it. Ah! if He were
but here, there would be no more question: the sullen waves
would sink beneath His call of peace, the hazy clouds lift, the
rumble die to silence. But He was away--away on some strange
business. Well; He knew His work. He would surely come soon
again to His children who needed Him so terribly.
* * * * * *
She had the good fortune to be alone in a crowd. Her
neighbour, a grizzled old man with his daughters beyond, was
her only neighbour, and a stranger. At her left rose up the red-
covered barricade over which she could see the sanctuary and
the curtain; and her seat in the tribune, raised some eight feet
above the floor, removed her from any possibility of
conversation. She was thankful for that: she did not want to
talk; she wanted only to control her faculties in silence, to
reassert her faith, to look out over this enormous throng
gathered to pay homage to the great Spirit whom they had
betrayed, to renew her own courage and faithfulness. She
wondered what the preacher would say, whether there would be
any note of penitence. Maternity was his subject--that benign
aspect of universal life--tenderness, love, quiet, receptive,
protective passion, the spirit that soothes rather than
inspires, that busies itself with peaceful tasks, that kindles
the lights and fires of home, that gives sleep, food and
welcome. . . .
The bell stopped, and in the instant before the music began
she heard, clear above the murmur within, the roar of the
crowds outside, who still demanded their God. Then, with a
crash, the huge organ awoke, pierced by the cry of the trumpets
and the maddening throb of drums. There was no delicate
prelude here, no slow stirring of life rising through labyrinths
of mystery to the climax of sight--here rather was full-orbed
day, the high noon of knowledge and power, the dayspring from
on high, dawning in mid-heaven. Her heart quickened to meet it,
and her reviving confidence, still convalescent, stirred and
smiled, as the tremendous chords blared overhead, telling of
triumph full-armed. God was man, then, after all--a God who
last night had faltered for an hour, but who rose again on this
morning of a new year, scattering mists, dominant over his own
passion, all-compelling and all-beloved. God was man, and
Felsenburgh his Incarnation! Yes, she must believe that! She
did believe that!
Then she saw how already the long procession was winding up
beneath the screen, and by imperceptible art the light grew yet
more acutely beautiful. They were coming, then, those ministers
of a pure worship; grave men who knew in what they believed,
and who, even if they did not at this moment thrill with
feeling (for she knew that in this respect her husband for one
did not), yet believed the principles of this worship and
recognised their need of expression for the majority of
mankind--coming slowly up in fours and pairs and units, led by
robed vergers, rippling over the steps, and emerging again into
the coloured sunlight in all their bravery of Masonic apron,
badge and jewel. Surely here was reassurance enough.
* * * * * *
The sanctuary now held a figure or two. Anxious-faced Mr.
Francis, in his robes of office, came gravely down the steps and
stood awaiting the procession, directing with almost
imperceptible motions his satellites who hovered about the
aisles ready to point this way and that to the advancing
stream; and the western-most seats were already beginning to
fill, when on a sudden she recognised that something had
happened.
Just now the roaring of the mob outside had provided a kind
of underbass to the music within, imperceptible except to sub-
consciousness, but clearly discernible in its absence; and this
absence was now a fact.
At first she thought that the signal of beginning worship had
hushed them; and then, with an indescribable thrill, she
remembered that in all her knowledge only one thing had ever
availed to quiet a turbulent crowd. Yet she was not sure; it
might be an illusion. Even now the mob might be roaring still,
and she only deaf to it; but again with an ecstasy that was very
near to agony she perceived that the murmur of voices even
within the building had ceased, and that some great wave of
emotion was stirring the sheets and slopes of faces before her
as a wind stirs wheat. A moment later, and she was on her feet,
gripping the rail, with her heart like an over-driven engine
beating pulses of blood, furious and insistent, through every
vein; for with a great rushing surge that sounded like a sigh,
heard even above the triumphant tumult overhead, the whole
enormous assemblage had risen to its feet.
Confusion seemed to break out in the orderly procession. She
saw Mr. Francis run forward quickly, gesticulating like a
conductor, and at his signal the long line swayed forward, split,
recoiled, and again slid swiftly forward, breaking as it did so
into twenty streams that poured along the seats and filled
them in a moment. Men ran and pushed, aprons flapped, hands
beckoned, all without coherent words.
There was a knocking of feet, the crash of an overturned
chair, and then, as if a god had lifted his hand for quiet, the
music ceased abruptly, sending a wild echo that swooned and
died in a moment; a great sigh filled its place, and, in the
coloured sunshine that lay along the immense length of the
gangway that ran open now from west to east, far down in the
distant nave, a single figure was seen advancing.
(III)
What Mabel saw and heard and felt from eleven o'clock to
half-an-hour after noon on that first morning of the New Year
she could never adequately remember. For the time she lost the
continuous consciousness of self, the power of reflection, for
she was still weak from her struggle; there was no longer in
her the process by which events are stored, labelled and
recorded; she was no more than a being who observed as it were
in one long act, across which considerations played at uncertain
intervals. Eyes and ear seemed her sole functions,
communicating direct with a burning heart.
* * * * * *
She did not even know at what point her senses told her that
this was Felsenburgh. She seemed to have known it even before
he entered, and she watched Him as in complete silence He came
deliberately up the red carpet, superbly alone, rising a step or
two at the entrance of the choir, passing on and up before her.
He was in His English judicial dress of scarlet and black, but
she scarcely noticed it. For her, too, no one else existed but
He; this vast assemblage was gone, poised and transfigured in
one vibrating atmosphere of an immense human emotion. There
was no one, anywhere, but Julian Felsenburgh. Peace and light
burned like a glory about Him.
For an instant after passing he disappeared beyond the
speaker's tribune, and the instant after reappeared once more,
coming up the steps. He reached his place--she could see His
profile beneath her and slightly to the left, pure and keen as
the blade of a knife, beneath His white hair. He lifted one
white-furred sleeve, made a single motion, and with a surge and
a rumble, the ten thousand were seated. He motioned again and
with a roar they were on their feet.
Again there was a silence. He stood now, perfectly still, His
hands laid together on the rail, and His face looking steadily
before Him; it seemed as if He who had drawn all eyes and
stilled all sounds were waiting until His domination were
complete, and there was but one will, one desire, and that
beneath His hand. Then He began to speak. . . .
* * * * * *
In this again, as Mabel perceived afterwards, there was no
precise or verbal record within her of what he said; there was
no conscious process by which she received, tested, or approved
what she heard. The nearest image under which she could
afterwards describe her emotions to herself, was that when He
spoke it was she who was speaking. Her own thoughts, her
predispositions, her griefs, her disappointment, her passion,
her hopes--all these interior acts of the soul known scarcely
even to herself, down even, it seemed, to the minutest whorls
and eddies of thought, were, by this man, lifted up, cleansed,
kindled, satisfied and proclaimed. For the first time in her
life she became perfectly aware of what human nature meant;
for it was her own heart that passed out upon the air, borne on
that immense voice. Again, as once before for a few moments in
Paul's House, it seemed that creation, groaning so long, had
spoken articulate words at last--had come to growth and
coherent thought and perfect speech. Yet then He had spoken to
men; now it was Man Himself speaking. It was not one man who
spoke there, it was Man--Man conscious of his origin, his
destiny, and his pilgrimage between, Man sane again after a
night of madness--knowing his strength, declaring his law,
lamenting in a voice as eloquent as stringed instruments his
own failure to correspond. It was a soliloquy rather than an
oration. Rome had fallen, English and Italian streets had run
with blood, smoke and flame had gone up to heaven, because man
had for an instant sunk back to the tiger. Yet it was done, cried
the great voice, and there was no repentance; it was done, and
ages hence man must still do penance and flush scarlet with
shame to remember that once he turned his back on the risen
light.
There was no appeal to the lurid, no picture of the tumbling
palaces, the running figures, the coughing explosions, the
shaking of the earth and the dying of the doomed. It was rather
with those hot hearts shouting in the English and German
streets, or aloft in the winter air of Italy, the ugly passions
that warred there, as the volors rocked at their stations,
generating and fulfilling revenge, paying back plot with plot,
and violence with violence. For there, cried the voice, was man
as he had been, fallen in an instant to the cruel old ages
before he had learnt what he was and why.
There was no repentance, said the voice again, but there was
something better; and as the hard, stinging tones melted, the
girl's dry eyes of shame filled in an instant with tears. There
was something better--the knowledge of what crimes man was
yet capable of, and the will to use that knowledge. Rome was
gone, and it was a lamentable shame; Rome was gone, and the
air was the sweeter for it; and then in an instant, like the soar
of a bird, He was up and away--away from the horrid gulf where
He had looked just now, from the fragments of charred bodies,
and tumbled houses and all the signs of man's disgrace, to the
pure air and sunlight to which man must once more set his
face. Yet He bore with Him in that wonderful flight the dew of
tears and the aroma of earth. He had not spared words with
which to lash and whip the naked human heart, and He did not
spare words to lift up the bleeding, shrinking thing, and
comfort it with the divine vision of love. . . .
Historically speaking, it was about forty minutes before He
turned to the shrouded image behind the altar.
"Oh! Maternity!" he cried. "Mother of us all----"
And then, to those who heard Him, the supreme miracle took
place. . . . For it seemed now in an instant that it was no
longer man who spoke, but One who stood upon the stage of the
superhuman. The curtain ripped back, as one who stood by it
tore, panting, at the strings; and there, it seemed, face to face
stood the Mother above the altar, huge, white and protective,
and the Child, one passionate incarnation of love, crying to her
from the tribune.
"Oh! Mother of us all, and Mother of Me!"
So He praised her to her face, that sublime principle of life,
declared her glories and her strength, her Immaculate
Motherhood, her seven swords of anguish driven through her
heart by the passion and the follies of her Son--He promised
her great things, the recognition of her countless children, the
love and service of the unborn, the welcome of those yet
quickening within the womb. He named her the Wisdom of the
Most High, that sweetly orders all things, the Gate of Heaven,
House of Ivory, Comforter of the afflicted, Queen of the World;
and, to the delirious eyes of those who looked on her it seemed
that the grave face smiled to hear Him. . . .
A great panting as of some monstrous life began to fill the
air as the mob swayed behind Him, and the torrential voice
poured on. Waves of emotion swept up and down; there were cries
and sobs, the yelping of a man beside himself at last, from
somewhere among the crowded seats, the crash of a bench, and
another and another, and the gangways were full, for He no
longer held them passive to listen; He was rousing them to
some supreme act. The tide crawled nearer, and the faces stared
no longer at the Son but the Mother; the girl in the gallery
tore at the heavy railing, and sank down sobbing upon her knees.
And above all the voice pealed on--and the thin hands blanched
to whiteness strained from the wide and sumptuous sleeves as if
to reach across the sanctuary itself.
It was a new tale He was telling now, and all to her glory. He
was from the East, now they knew, come from some triumph. He
had been hailed as King, adored as Divine, as was meet and right
--He, the humble superhuman son of a Human Mother--who bore
not a sword but peace, not a cross but a crown. So it seemed He
was saying; yet no man there knew whether He said it or not--
whether the voice proclaimed it, or their hearts asserted it.
He was on the steps of the sanctuary now, still with
outstretched hands and pouring words, and the mob rolled after
him to the rumble of ten thousand feet and the sighing of ten
thousand hearts. . . . He was at the altar; He was upon it. Again
in one last cry, as the crowd broke against the steps beneath,
He hailed her Queen and Mother.
The end came in a moment, swift and inevitable. And for an
instant, before the girl in the gallery sank down, blind with
tears, she saw the tiny figure poised there at the knees of the
huge image, beneath the expectant hands, silent and
transfigured in the blaze of light. The Mother, it seemed, had
found her Son at last.
For an instant she saw it, the soaring columns, the gilding
and the colours, the swaying heads, the tossing hands. It was a
sea that heaved before her, lights went up and down, the rose
window whirled overhead, presences filled the air, heaven
flashed away, and the earth shook in ecstasy.
Then in the heavenly light, to the crash of drums, above the
screaming of the women and the battering of feet, in one
thunder-peal of worship ten thousand voices hailed Him Lord and
God.
THE little room where the new Pope sat reading was a model of
simplicity. Its walls were whitewashed, its roof unpolished
rafters, and its floor beaten mud. A square table stood in the
centre, with a chair beside it; a cold brazier, laid for lighting,
stood in the wide hearth; a bookshelf against the wall held a
dozen volumes. There were three doors, one leading to the
private oratory, one to the ante-room, and the third to the
little paved court. The south windows were shuttered, but
through the ill-fitting hinges streamed knife-blades of fiery
light from the hot Eastern day outside.
It was the time of the mid-day siesta, and except for the
brisk scything of the cicade from the hill-slope behind the
house, all was in deep silence.
* * * * * *
The Pope, who had dined an hour before, had hardly shifted
His attitude in all that time, so intent was He upon His
reading. For the while, all was put away, His own memory of
those last three months, the bitter anxiety, the intolerable
load of responsibility. The book He held was a cheap reprint of
the famous biography of Julian Felsenburgh, issued a month
before, and He was now drawing to an end.
It was a terse, well-written book, composed by an unknown
hand, and some even suspected it to be the disguised work of
Felsenburgh himself. More, however, considered that it was
written at least with Felsenburgh's consent by one of that
small body of intimates whom he had admitted to his society--
that body which under him now conducted the affairs of West and
East. From certain indications in the book it had been argued
that its actual writer was a Western.
The main body of the work dealt with his life, or rather with
those two or three years known to the world, from his rapid
rise in American politics and his mediation in the East down to
the event of five months ago, when in swift succession he had
been hailed Messiah in Damascus, had been formally adored in
London, and finally elected by an extraordinary majority to the
Tribuniciate of the two Americas.
The Pope had read rapidly through these objective facts, for
He knew them well enough already, and was now studying with
close attention the summary of his character, or rather, as the
author rather sententiously explained, the summary of his self-
manifestation to the world. He read the description of his two
main characteristics, his grasp upon words and facts; "words,
the daughters of earth, were wedded in this man to facts, the
sons of heaven, and Superman was their offspring." His minor
characteristics, too, were noticed, his appetite for literature,
his astonishing memory, his linguistic powers. He possessed, it
appeared, both the telescopic and the microscopic eye--he
discerned world-wide tendencies and movements on the one hand;
he had a passionate capacity for detail on the other. Various
anecdotes illustrated these remarks, and a number of terse
aphorisms of his were recorded. "No man forgives," he said; "he
only understands." "It needs supreme faith to renounce a
transcendent God." "A man who believes in himself is almost
capable of believing in his neighbour." Here was a sentence that
to the Pope's mind was significant of that sublime egotism
that is alone capable of confronting the Christian spirit: and
again, "To forgive a wrong is to condone a crime," and "The
strong man is accessible to no one, but all are accessible to
him."
There was a certain pompousness in this array of remarks,
but it lay, as the Pope saw very well, not in the speaker but in
the scribe. To him who had seen the speaker it was plain how
they had been uttered--with no pontifical solemnity, but
whirled out in a fiery stream of eloquence, or spoken with that
strangely moving simplicity that had constituted his first
assault on London. It was possible to hate Felsenburgh, and to
fear him; but never to be amused at him.
But plainly the supreme pleasure of the writer was to trace
the analogy between his hero and nature. In both there was the
same apparent contradictoriness--the combination of utter
tenderness and utter ruthlessness. "The power that heals wounds
also inflicts them: that clothes the dungheap with sweet
growths and grasses, breaks, too, into fire and earthquake; that
causes the partridge to die for her young, also makes the shrike
with his living larder." So, too, with Felsenburgh; He who had
wept over the Fall of Rome, a month later had spoken of
extermination as an instrument that even now might be
judicially used in the service of humanity. Only it must be used
with deliberation, not with passion.
The utterance had aroused extraordinary interest, since it
seemed so paradoxical from one who preached peace and
toleration; and argument had broken out all over the world. But
beyond enforcing the dispersal of the Irish Catholics, and the
execution of a few individuals, so far that utterance had not
been acted upon. Yet the world seemed as a whole to have
accepted it, and even now to be waiting for its fulfilment.
As the biographer pointed out, the world enclosed in physical
nature should welcome one who followed its precepts, one who
was indeed the first to introduce deliberately and confessedly
into human affairs such laws as those of the Survival of the
Fittest and the immorality of forgiveness. If there was mystery
in the one, there was mystery in the other, and both must be
accepted if man was to develop.
And the secret of this, it seemed, lay in His personality. To
see Him was to believe in Him, or rather to accept Him as
inevitably true. "We do not explain nature or escape from it by
sentimental regrets: the hare cries like a child, the wounded
stag weeps great tears, the robin kills his parents; life exists
only on condition of death; and these things happen however we
may weave theories that explain nothing. Life must be accepted
on those terms; we cannot be wrong if we follow nature; rather
to accept them is to find peace--our great mother only reveals
her secrets to those who take her as she is." So, too, with
Felsenburgh. "It is not for us to discriminate: His personality
is of a kind that does not admit it. He is complete and
sufficing for those who trust Him and are willing to suffer; an
hostile and hateful enigma to those who are not. We must
prepare ourselves for the logical outcome of this doctrine.
Sentimentality must not be permitted to dominate reason."
Finally, then, the writer showed how to this Man belonged
properly all those titles hitherto lavished upon imagined
Supreme Beings. It was in preparation for Him that these types
came into the realms of thought and influenced men's lives.
He was the Creator, for it was reserved for Him to bring into
being the perfect life of union to which all the world had
hitherto groaned in vain; it was in His own image and likeness
that He had made man.
Yet He was the Redeemer too, for that likeness had in one
sense always underlain the tumult of mistake and conflict. He
had brought man out of darkness and the shadow of death,
guiding their feet into the way of peace. He was the Saviour for
the same reason--the Son of Man for He alone was perfectly
human; He was the Absolute, for He was the content of Ideals;
the Eternal, for He had lain always in nature's potentiality and
secured by His being the continuity of that order; the Infinite,
for all finite things fell short of Him who was more than their
sum.
He was Alpha, then, and Omega, the beginning and the end, the
first and the last. He was Dominus et Deus noster (as Domitian
had been, the Pope reflected). He was as simple and as complex
as life itself--simple in its essence, complex in its activities.
And last of all, the supreme proof of His mission lay in the
immortal nature of His message. There was no more to be added
to what He had brought to light--for in Him all diverging lines
at last found their origin and their end. As to whether or no He
would prove to be personally immortal--this was an wholly
irrelevant thought; it would be indeed fitting if through His
means the vital principle should disclose its last secret; but
no more than fitting. Already His spirit was in the world; the
individual was no more separate from his fellows; death no
more than a wrinkle that came and went across the inviolable
sea. For man had learned at last that the race was all and self
was nothing; the cell had discovered the unity of the body;
even, the greatest thinkers declared, the consciousness of the
individual had yielded the title of Personality to the corporate
mass of man--and the restlessness of the unit had sunk into
the peace of a common Humanity, for nothing but this could
explain the cessation of party strife and national competition
--and this, above all, had been the work of Felsenburgh.
"Behold I am with you always," quoted the writer in a
passionate peroration, "even now in the consummation of the
world; and the Comforter is come unto you. I am the Door--the
Way, the Truth and the Life--the Bread of Life and the Water of
Life. My name is Wonderful, the Prince of Peace, the Father
Everlasting. It is I who am the Desire of all nations, the
fairest among the children of men--and of my Kingdom there
shall be no end."
* * * * * *
The Pope laid down the book, and leaned back, closing his
eyes.
(II)
And as for Himself, what had He to say to all this? A
Transcendent God Who hid Himself, a Divine Saviour Who delayed
to come, a Comforter heard no longer in wind nor seen in fire!
There, in the next room, was a little wooden altar, and above
it an iron box, and within that box a silver cup, and within
that cup--Something. Outside the house, a hundred yards away,
lay the domes and plaster roofs of a little village called
Nazareth; Carmel was on the right, a mile or two away, Thabor
on the left, the plain of Esdraelon in front; and behind, Cana
and Galilee, and the quiet lake, and Hermon. And far away to the
south lay Jerusalem. . . .
It was to this tiny strip of holy land that the Pope had
come--the land where a Faith had sprouted two thousand years
ago, and where, unless God spoke in fire from heaven, it would
presently be cut down as a cumberer of the ground. It was here
on this material earth that One had walked Whom all men had
thought to have been He Who would redeem Israel--in this
village that He had fetched water and made boxes and chairs, on
that long lake that His Feet had walked, on that high hill that
He had flamed in glory, on that smooth, low mountain to the
north that He had declared that the meek were blessed and
should inherit the earth, that peacemakers were the children of
God, that they who hungered and thirsted should be satisfied.
And now it was come to this. Christianity had smouldered
away from Europe like a sunset on darkening peaks; Eternal
Rome was a heap of ruins; in East and West alike a man had been
set upon the throne of God, had been acclaimed as divine. The
world had leapt forward; social science was supreme; men had
learnt consistency; they had learnt, too, the social lessons of
Christianity apart from a Divine Teacher, or, rather, they said,
in spite of Him. There were left, perhaps, three millions,
perhaps five, at the utmost ten millions--it was impossible to
know--throughout the entire inhabited globe who still
worshipped Jesus Christ as God. And the Vicar of Christ sat in a
whitewashed room in Nazareth, dressed as simply as His master,
waiting for the end.
* * * * * *
He had done what He could. There had been a week five months
ago when it had been doubtful whether anything at all could be
done. There were left three Cardinals alive, Himself, Steinmann,
and the Patriarch of Jerusalem; the rest lay mangled somewhere
in the ruins of Rome. There was no precedent to follow; so the
two Europeans had made their way out to the East, and to the
one town. in it where quiet still reigned. With the
disappearance of Greek Christianity there had also vanished the
last remnants of internecine war in Christendom; and by a kind
of tacit consent of the world, Christians were allowed a
moderate liberty in Palestine. Russia, which now held the
country as a dependency, had sufficient sentiment left to leave
it alone; it was true that the holy places had been desecrated,
and remained now only as spots of antiquarian interest; the
altars were gone but the sites were yet marked, and, although
mass could no longer be said there, it was understood that
private oratories were not forbidden.
It was in this state that the two European Cardinals had
found the Holy City; it was not thought wise to wear insignia of
any description in public; and it was practically certain even
now that the civilised world was unaware of their existence; for
within three days of their arrival the old Patriarch had died,
yet not before Percy Franklin, surely under the strangest
circumstances since those of the first century, had been elected
to the Supreme Pontificate. It had all been done in a few
minutes by the dying man's bedside. The two old men had
insisted. The German had even recurred once more to the
strange resemblance between Percy and Julian Felsenburgh, and
had murmured his old half-heard remarks about the antithesis,
and the Finger of God; and Percy, marvelling at his
superstition, had accepted, and the election was recorded. He
had taken the name of Silvester, the last saint in the year, and
was the third of that title. He had then retired to Nazareth
with his chaplain; Steinmann had gone back to Germany, and
been hanged in a riot within a fortnight of his arrival.
The next matter was the creation of new cardinals, and to
twenty persons, with infinite precautions, briefs had been
conveyed. Of these, nine had declined; three more had been
approached, of whom only one had accepted. There were
therefore at this moment twelve persons in the world who
constituted the Sacred College--two Englishmen, of whom
Corkran was one; two Americans, a Frenchman, a German, an
Italian, a Spaniard, a Pole, a Chinaman, a Greek, and a Russian.
To these were entrusted vast districts over which their control
was supreme, subject only to the Holy Father Himself.
As regarded the Pope's own life very little need be said. It
resembled, He thought, in its outward circumstances that of
such a man as Leo the Great, without His worldly importance or
pomp. Theoretically, the Christian world was under His
dominion; practically, Christian affairs were administered by
local authorities. It was impossible for a hundred reasons for
Him to do what He wished with regard to the exchange of
communications. An elaborate cypher had been designed, and a
private telegraphic station organised on His roof
communicating with another in Damascus where Cardinal Corkran
had fixed his residence; and from that centre messages
occasionally were despatched to ecclesiastical authorities
elsewhere; but, for the most part, there was little to be done.
The Pope, however, had the satisfaction of knowing that, with
incredible difficulty, a little progress had been made towards
the reorganisation of the hierarchy in all countries. Bishops
were being consecrated freely; there were not less than two
thousand of them all told, and of priests an unknown number.
The Order of Christ Crucified was doing excellent work, and the
tales of not less than four hundred martyrdoms had reached
Nazareth during the last two months, accomplished mostly at
the hands of the mobs.
In other respects, also, as well as in the primary object of
the Order's existence (namely, the affording of an opportunity
to all who loved God to dedicate themselves to Him more
perfectly), the new Religious were doing good work. The more
perilous tasks--the work of communication between prelates,
missions to persons of suspected integrity--all the business,
in fact, which was carried on now at the vital risk of the agent
were entrusted solely to members of the Order. Stringent
instructions had been issued from Nazareth that no bishop was
to expose himself unnecessarily; each was to regard himself as
the heart of his diocese to be protected at all costs save that
of Christian honour, and in consequence each had surrounded
himself with a group of the new Religious--men and women--who
with extraordinary and generous obedience undertook such
dangerous tasks as they were capable of performing. It was
plain enough by now that had it not been for the Order, the
Church would have been little better than paralysed under these
new conditions.
Extraordinary facilities were being issued in all directions.
Every priest who belonged to the Order received universal
jurisdiction subject to the bishop, if any, of the diocese in
which he might be; mass might be said on any day of the year
of the Five Wounds, or the Resurrection, or Our Lady; and all
had the privilege of the portable altar, now permitted to be
wood. Further ritual requirements were relaxed; mass might be
said with any decent vessels of any material capable of
destruction, such as glass or china; bread of any description
might be used; and no vestments were obligatory except the
thin thread that now represented the stole; lights were non-
essential; none need wear the clerical habit; and rosary, even
without beads, was always permissible instead of the Office.
In this manner priests were rendered capable of giving the
sacraments and offering the holy sacrifice at the least
possible risk to themselves; and these relaxations had already
proved of enormous benefit in the European prisons where by
this time many thousands of Catholics were undergoing the
penalty of refusing public worship.
* * * * * *
The Pope's private life was as simple as His room. He had
one Syrian priest for His chaplain, and two Syrian servants. He
said His mass each morning, Himself wearing vestments and His
white habit beneath, and heard a mass after. He then took His
coffee, after changing into the tunic and burnous of the
country, and spent the morning over business. He dined at noon,
slept, and rode out, for the country by reason of its
indeterminate position was still in the simplicity of a hundred
years ago. He returned at dusk, supped, and worked again till
late into the night.
That was all. His chaplain sent what messages were necessary
to Damascus; His servants, themselves ignorant of His dignity,
dealt with the secular world so far as was required, and the
utmost that seemed to be known to His few neighbours was that
there lived in the late Sheikh's little house on the hill an
eccentric European with a telegraph office. His servants,
themselves devout Catholics, knew Him for a bishop, but no
more than that. They were told only that there was yet a Pope
alive, and with that and the sacraments were content.
To sum up, therefore--the Catholic world knew that their
Pope lived under the name of Silvester; and thirteen persons of
the entire human race knew that Franklin had been His name,
and that the throne of Peter rested for the time in Nazareth.
It was, as a Frenchman had said, just a hundred years ago.
Catholicism survived; but no more.
(III)
And as for His inner life, what can be said of that?
He lay now back in his wooden chair, thinking, with closed
eyes.
He could not have described it consistently even to Himself,
for indeed He scarcely knew it: He acted rather than indulged in
reflex thought. But the centre of His position was simple faith.
The Catholic Religion, He knew well enough, gave the only
adequate explanation of the universe; it did not unlock all
mysteries, but it unlocked more than any other key known to
man; He knew, too, perfectly well, that it was the only system
of thought that satisfied man as a whole, and accounted for him
in his essential nature. Further, He saw well enough that the
failure of Christianity to unite all men one to another rested
not upon its feebleness but its strength; its lines met in
eternity, not in time. Besides, He happened to believe it.
But to this foreground there were other moods whose shifting
was out of His control. In his exalté moods, which came upon
Him like a breeze from Paradise, the background was bright with
hope and drama--He saw Himself and His companions as Peter
and the Apostles must have regarded themselves, as they
proclaimed through the world, in temples, slums, market-places
and private houses, the faith that was to shake and transform
the world. They had handled the Lord of Life, seen the empty
sepulchre, grasped the pierced hands of Him Who was their
brother and their God. It was radiantly true, though not a man
believed it; the huge superincumbent weight of incredulity
could not disturb a fact that was as the sun in heaven.
Moreover, the very desperateness of the cause was their
inspiration. There was no temptation to lean upon the arm of
flesh, for there was none that fought for them but God. Their
nakedness was their armour, their slow tongues their
persuasiveness, their weakness demanded God's strength, and
found it. Yet there was this difference, and it was a significant
one. For Peter the spiritual world had an interpretation and a
guarantee in the outward events he had witnessed. He had
handled the Risen Christ, the external corroborated the
internal. But for Silvester it was not so. For Him it was
necessary so to grasp spiritual truths in the supernatural
sphere that the external events of the Incarnation were proved
by rather than proved the certitude of His spiritual
apprehension. Certainly, historically speaking, Christianity was
true--proved by its records--yet to see that needed
illumination. He apprehended the power of the Resurrection,
therefore Christ was risen.
Therefore in heavier moods it was different with him. There
were periods, lasting sometimes for days together, clouding Him
when He awoke, stifling Him as He tried to sleep, dulling the
very savour of the Sacrament and the thrill of the Precious
Blood; times in which the darkness was so intolerable that even
the solid objects of faith attenuated themselves to shadow,
when half His nature was blind not only to Christ, but to God
Himself, and the reality of His own existence--when His own
awful dignity seemed as the insignia of a fool. And was it
conceivable, His earthly mind demanded, that He and His college
of twelve and His few thousands should be right, and the entire
consensus of the civilised world wrong? It was not that the
world had not heard the message of the Gospel; it had heard
little else for two thousand years, and now pronounced it false
--false in its external credentials, and false therefore in its
spiritual claims. It was a lost cause for which He suffered; He
was not the last of an august line, He was the smoking wick of a
candle of folly; He was the reductio ad absurdum of a ludicrous
syllogism based on impossible premises. He was not worth
killing, He and His company of the insane--they were no more
than the crowned dunces of the world's school. Sanity sat on
the solid benches of materialism. And this heaviness waxed so
dark sometimes that He almost persuaded Himself that His faith
was gone; the clamours of mind so loud that the whisper of the
heart was unheard, the desires for earthly peace so fierce that
supernatural ambitions were silenced--so dense was the gloom,
that, hoping against hope, believing against knowledge, and
loving against truth, He cried as One other had cried on another
day like this--Eli, Eli, lama sabachthani! . . . But that, at
least, He never failed to cry.
One thing alone gave Him power to go on, so far at least as
His consciousness was concerned, and that was His meditation.
He had travelled far in the mystical life since His agonies of
effort. Now He used no deliberate descents into the spiritual
world: He threw, as it were, His hands over His head, and
dropped into spacelessness. Consciousness would draw Him up, as
a cork, to the surface, but He would do no more than repeat His
action, until by that cessation of activity, which is the
supreme energy, He floated in the twilight realm of
transcendence; and there God would deal with Him--now by an
articulate sentence, now by a sword of pain, now by an air like
the vivifying breath of the sea. Sometimes after Communion He
would treat Him so, sometimes as He fell asleep, sometimes in
the whirl of work. Yet His consciousness did not seem to retain
for long such experiences; five minutes later, it might be, He
would be wrestling once more with the all but sensible
phantoms of the mind and the heart.
There He lay, then, in the chair, revolving the intolerable
blasphemies that He had read. His white hair was thin upon His
browned temples, His hands were as the hands of a spirit, and
His young face lined and patched with sorrow. His bare feet
protruded from beneath His stained tunic, and His old brown
burnous lay on the floor beside Him. . . .
It was an hour before He moved, and the sun had already lost
half its fierceness, when the steps of the horses sounded in the
paved court outside. Then He sat up, slipped His feet into their
shoes, and lifted the burnous from the floor, as the door
opened and the lean sun-burnt priest came through.
"The horses, Holiness," said the man.
* * * * * *
The Pope spoke not one word that afternoon, until the two
came towards sunset up the bridle-path that leads between
Thabor and Nazareth. They had taken their usual round through
Cana, mounting a hillock from which the long mirror of
Gennesareth could be seen, and passing on, always bearing to the
right, under the shadow of Thabor until once more Esdraelon
spread itself beneath like a grey-green carpet, a vast circle,
twenty miles across, sprinkled sparsely with groups of huts,
white walls and roofs, with Nain visible on the other side,
Carmel heaving its long form far off on the right, and Nazareth
nestling a mile or two away on the plateau on which they had
halted.
It was a sight of extraordinary peace, and seemed an extract
from some old picture-book designed centuries ago. Here was no
crowd of roofs, no pressure of hot humanity, no terrible
evidences of civilisation and manufactory and strenuous,
fruitless effort. A few tired Jews had come back to this quiet
little land, as old people may return to their native place,
with no hope of renewing their youth, or re-finding their
ideals, but with a kind of sentimentality that prevails so often
over more logical motives, and a few more barrack-like houses
had been added here and there to the obscure villages in sight.
But it was very much as it had been a hundred years ago.
The plain was half shadowed by Carmel, and half in dusty
golden light. Overhead the clear Eastern sky was flushed with
rose, as it had flushed for Abraham, Jacob, and the Son of
David. There was no little cloud here, as a man's hand, over the
sea, charged with both promise and terror; no sound of chariot-
wheels from earth or heaven, no vision of heavenly horses such
as a young man had seen thirty centuries ago in this very sky.
Here was the old earth and the old heaven, unchanged and
unchangeable; the patient, returning spring had starred the thin
soil with flowers of Bethlehem, and those glorious lilies to
which Solomon's scarlet garments might not be compared. There
was no whisper from the Throne as when Gabriel had once
stooped through this very air to hail Her who was blessed
among women, no breath of promise or hope beyond that which
God sends through every movement of His created robe of life.
As the two halted, and the horses looked out with steady,
inquisitive eyes at the immensity of light and air beneath
them, a soft hooting cry broke out, and a shepherd passed below
along the hillside a hundred yards away, trailing his long
shadow behind him, and to the mellow tinkle of bells his flock
came after, a troop of obedient sheep and wilful goats, cropping
and following and cropping again as they went on to the fold,
called by name in that sad minor voice of him who knew each,
and led instead of driving. The soft clanking grew fainter, the
shadow of the shepherd shot once to their very feet, as he
topped the rise, and vanished again as he stepped down once
more; and the call grew fainter yet, and ceased.
* * * * * *
The Pope lifted His hand to His eyes for an instant then
smoothed it down His face.
He nodded across to a dim patch of white walls glimmering
through the violet haze of the falling twilight.
"That place, father," He said, "what is its name?"
The Syrian priest looked across, back once more at the Pope,
and across again.
"That among the palms, Holiness?"
"Yes."
"That is Megiddo," he said. "Some call it Armageddon."
AT twenty-three o'clock that night the Syrian priest went out
to watch for the coming of the messenger from Tiberias. Nearly
two hours previously he had heard the cry of the Russian volor
that plied from Damascus to Tiberias, and Tiberias to
Jerusalem, and even as it was the messenger was a little late.
These were very primitive arrangements, but Palestine was
out of the world--a slip of useless country--and it was
necessary for a man to ride from Tiberias to Nazareth each
night with papers from Cardinal Corkran to the Pope, and to
return with correspondence. It was a dangerous task, and the
members of the New Order who surrounded the Cardinal undertook
it by turns. In this manner all matters for which the Pope's
personal attention was required, and which were too long and
not too urgent, could be dealt with at leisure by him, and an
answer returned within the twenty-four hours.
It was a brilliant moonlit night. The great golden shield was
riding high above Thabor, shedding its strange metallic light
down the long slopes and over the moor-like country that rose
up from before the house-door--casting too heavy black shadows
that seemed far more concrete and solid than the brilliant
pale surfaces of the rock slabs or even than the diamond
flashes from the quartz and crystal that here and there
sparkled up the stony pathway. Compared with this clear
splendour, the yellow light from the shuttered house seemed a
hot and tawdry thing; and the priest, leaning against the door-
post, his eyes alone alight in his dark face, sank down at last
with a kind of Eastern sensuousness to bathe himself in the
glory, and to spread his lean, brown hands out to it.
This was a very simple man, in faith as well as in life. For
him there were neither the ecstasies nor the desolations of his
master. It was an immense and solemn joy to him to live here
at the spot of God's Incarnation and in attendance upon His
Vicar. As regarded the movements of the world, he observed
them as a man in a ship watches the heaving of the waves far
beneath. Of course the world was restless, he half perceived,
for, as the Latin Doctor had said, all hearts were restless until
they found their rest in God. Quare fremuerunt gentes? . . .
Adversus Dominum, et adversus Christum ejus! As to the end--he
was not greatly concerned. It might well be that the ship would
be overwhelmed, but the moment of the catastrophe would be
the end of all things earthly. The gates of hell shall not
prevail: when Rome falls, the world falls; and when the world
falls, Christ is manifest in power. For himself, he imagined
that the end was not far away. When he had named Megiddo this
afternoon it had been in his mind; to him it seemed natural
that at the consummation of all things Christ's Vicar should
dwell at Nazareth where His King had come on earth--and that
the Armageddon of the Divine John should be within sight of
the scene where Christ had first taken His earthly sceptre and
should take it again. After all, it would not be the first battle
that Megiddo had seen. Israel and Amalek had met here; Israel
and Assyria; Sesostris had ridden here and Sennacherib.
Christian and Turk had contended here, like Michael and Satan,
over the place where God's Body had lain. As to the exact
method of that end, he had no clear views; it would be a battle
of some kind, and what field could be found more evidently
designed for that than this huge flat circular plain of
Esdraelon, twenty miles across, sufficient to hold all the
armies of the earth in its embrace? To his view once more,
ignorant as he was of present statistics, the world was divided
into two large sections, Christians and heathens, and he
supposed them very much of a size. Something would happen,
troops would land at Khaifa, they would stream southwards from
Tiberias, Damascus and remote Asia, northwards from Jerusalem,
Egypt and Africa; eastwards from Europe; westwards from Asia
again and the far-off Americas. And, surely, the time could not
be far away, for here was Christ's Vicar; and, as He Himself had
said in His gospel of the Advent, Ubicumque fuerit corpus, illic
congregabuntur et aquilae.
Of more subtle interpretations of prophecy he had no
knowledge. For him words were things, not merely labels upon
ideas. What Christ and St. Paul and St. John had said--these
things were so. He had escaped, owing chiefly to his isolation
from the world, that vast expansion of Ritschlian ideas that
during the last century had been responsible for the desertion
by so many of any intelligible creed. For others this had been
the supreme struggle--the difficulty of decision between the
facts that words were not things, and yet that the things they
represented were in themselves objective. But to this man,
sitting now in the moonlight, listening to the far-off tap of
hoofs over the hill as the messenger came up from Cana, faith
was as simple as an exact science. Here Gabriel had descended
on wide feathered wings from the Throne of God set beyond the
stars, the Holy Ghost had breathed in a beam of ineffable light,
the Word had become Flesh as Mary folded her arms and bowed
her head to the decree of the Eternal. And here once more, he
thought, though it was no more than a guess--yet he thought
that already the running of chariot-wheels was audible--the
tumult of the hosts of God gathering about the camp of the
saints--he thought that already beyond the bars of the dark
Gabriel set to his lips the trumpet of doom and heaven was
astir. He might be wrong at this time, as others had been wrong
at other times, but neither he nor they could be wrong for
ever; there must some day be an end to the patience of God,
even though that patience sprang from the eternity of His
nature.
* * * * * *
He stood up, as down the pale moonlit path a hundred yards
away came a pale figure of one who rode, with a leather bag
strapped to his girdle.
(II)
It would be about three o'clock in the morning that the
priest awoke in his little mud-walled room next to that of the
Holy Father's, and heard a footstep coming up the stairs. Last
evening he had left his master as usual beginning to open the
pile of letters arrived from Cardinal Corkran, and himself had
gone straight to his bed and slept. He lay now a moment or two,
still drowsy, listening to the pad of feet, and an instant later
sat up abruptly, for a deliberate tap had sounded on the door.
Again it came; he sprang out of bed in his long night-tunic,
drew it up hastily in his girdle, went to the door and opened it.
The Pope was standing there, with a little lamp in one hand,
for the dawn had scarcely yet begun, and a paper in the other.
"I beg your pardon, Father; but there is a message I must
have sent at once to his Eminence."
Together they went out through the Pope's room, the priest
still half-blind with sleep, passed up the stairs, and emerged
into the clear cold air of the upper roof. The Pope blew out His
lamp, and set it on the parapet.
"You will be cold, Father; fetch your cloak."
"And you, Holiness?"
The other made a little gesture of denial, and went across to
the tiny temporary shed where the wireless telegraphic
instrument stood.
"Fetch your cloak, Father," He said again over His shoulder.
"I will ring up meanwhile."
When the priest came back three minutes later, in his
slippers and cloak, carrying another cloak also for his master,
the Pope was still seated at the table. He did not even move
His head as the other came up, but once more pressed on the
lever that, communicating with the twelve-foot pole that rose
through the pent-house overhead, shot out the quivering energy
through the eighty miles of glimmering air that lay between
Nazareth and Damascus.
This simple priest had scarcely even by now become
accustomed to this extraordinary device invented a century ago
and perfected through all those years to this precise exactness
--that device by which with the help of a stick, a bundle of
wires, and a box of wheels, something, at last established to be
at the root of all matter, if not at the very root of physical
life, spoke across the spaces of the world to a tiny receiver
tuned by a hair's breadth to the vibration with which it was set
in relations.
The air was surprisingly cold, considering the heat that had
preceded and would follow it, and the priest shivered a little
as he stood clear of the roof, and stared, now at the motionless
figure in the chair before him, now at the vast vault of the sky
passing, even as he looked, from a cold colourless luminosity
to a tender tint of yellow, as far away beyond Thabor and Moab
the dawn began to deepen. From the village half-a-mile away
arose the crowing of a cock, thin and brazen as a trumpet; a dog
barked once and was silent again; and then, on a sudden, a
single stroke upon a bell hung in the roof recalled him in an
instant, and told him that his work was to begin.
The Pope pressed the lever again at the sound, twice, and
then, after a pause, once more--waited a moment for an answer,
and then when it came, rose and signed to the priest to take his
place.
The Syrian sat down, handing the extra cloak to his master,
and waited until the other had settled Himself in a chair set in
such a position at the side of the table that the face of each
was visible to the other. Then he waited, with his brown fingers
poised above the row of keys, looking at the other's face as He
arranged himself to speak. That face, he thought, looking out
from the hood, seemed paler than ever in this cold light of
dawn; the black arched eyebrows accentuated this, and even the
steady lips, preparing to speak, seemed white and bloodless. He
had His paper in His hand, and His eyes were fixed upon this.
"Make sure it is the Cardinal," he said abruptly.
The priest tapped off an enquiry, and, with moving lips, read
off the printed message, as like magic it precipitated itself on
to the tall white sheet of paper that faced him.
"It is his Eminence, Holiness," he said softly. "He is alone
at the instrument."
"Very well. Now then; begin."
"We have received your Eminence's letter, and have noted the
news. . . . It should have been forwarded by telegraphy--why was
that not done?"
The voice paused, and the priest who had snapped off the
message, more quickly than a man could write it, read aloud the
answer.
"`I did not understand that it was urgent. I thought it was
but one more assault. I had intended to communicate more so
soon as I heard more.'"
"Of course it was urgent," came the voice again in the
deliberate intonation that was used between these two in the
case of messages for transmission. "Remember that all news of
this kind is always urgent."
"`I will remember,'" read the priest. "`I regret my
mistake.'"
"You tell us," went on the Pope, His eyes still downcast on
the paper, "that this measure is decided upon; you name only
three authorities. Give me, now, all the authorities you have, if
you have more."
There was a moment's pause. Then the priest began to read
off the names.
"`Besides the three Cardinals whose names I sent, the
Archbishops of Thibet, Cairo, Calcutta and Sydney have all asked
if the news was true, and for directions if it is true; besides
others whose names I can communicate if I may leave the table
for a moment.'"
"Do so," said the Pope.
Again there was a pause. Then once more the names began.
"`The Bishops of Bukarest, the Marquesas Islands and
Newfoundland. The Franciscans in Japan, the Crutched Friars in
Morocco, the Archbishops of Manitoba and Portland, and the
Cardinal-Archbishop of Pekin. I have despatched two members of
Christ Crucified to England.'"
"Tell us when the news first arrived, and how."
"`I was called up to the instrument yesterday evening at
about twenty o'clock. The Archbishop of Sydney was asking,
through our station at Bombay, whether the news was true. I
replied I had heard nothing of it. Within ten minutes four more
enquiries had come to the same effect; and three minutes later
Cardinal Ruspoli sent the positive news from Turin. This was
accompanied by a similar message from Father Petrovski in
Moscow. Then----'"
"Stop. Why did not Cardinal Dolgorovski communicate it?"
"`He did communicate it three hours later.'"
"Why not at once?"
"`His Eminence had not heard it.'"
"Find out at what hour the news reached Moscow--not now, but
within the day."
"`I will.'"
"Go on, then."
"`Cardinal Malpas communicated it within five minutes of
Cardinal Ruspoli, and the rest of the enquiries arrived before
midnight. China reported it at twenty-three.'"
"Then when do you suppose the news was made public?"
"`It was decided first at the secret London conference,
yesterday, at about sixteen o'clock by our time. The
Plenipotentiaries appear to have signed it at that hour. After
that it was communicated to the world. It was published here
half an hour past midnight.'"
"Then Felsenburgh was in London?"
"`I am not yet sure. Cardinal Malpas tells me that
Felsenburgh gave his provisional consent on the previous day.'"
"Very good. That is all you know, then?"
"`I was called up an hour ago by Cardinal Ruspoli again. He
tells me that he fears a riot in Florence; it will be the first
of many revolutions, he says.'"
"Does he ask for anything?"
"`Only for directions.'"
"Tell him that we send him the Apostolic Benediction, and
will forward directions within the course of two hours. Select
twelve members of the Order for immediate service."
"`I will.'"
"Communicate that message also, as soon as we have finished,
to all the Sacred College, and bid them communicate it with
all discretion to all metropolitans and bishops, that priests
and people may know that We bear them in our heart."
"`I will, Holiness.'"
"Tell them, finally, that We had foreseen this long ago; that
We commend them to the Eternal Father without Whose
Providence no sparrow falls to the ground. Bid them be quiet
and confident; to do nothing, save confess their faith when they
are questioned. All other directions shall be issued to their
pastors immediately!"
"`I will, Holiness.'"
* * * * * *
There was again a pause.
The Pope had been speaking with the utmost tranquillity as
one in a dream. His eyes were downcast upon the paper, His
whole body as motionless as an image. Yet to the priest who
listened, despatching the Latin messages, and reading aloud the
replies, it seemed, although so little intelligible news had
reached him, as if something very strange and great was
impending. There was the sense of a peculiar strain in the air,
and although he drew no deductions from the fact that
apparently the whole Catholic world was in frantic
communication with Damascus, yet he remembered his
meditations of the evening before as he had waited for the
messenger. It seemed as if the powers of this world were
contemplating one more step--with its nature he was not
greatly concerned.
The Pope spoke again in His natural voice.
"Father," he said, "what I am about to say now is as if I told
it in confession. You understand?--Very well. Now begin."
Then again the intonation began.
"Eminence. We shall say mass of the Holy Ghost in one hour
from now. At the end of that time, you will cause that all the
Sacred College shall be in touch with yourself, and waiting for
our commands. This new decision is unlike any that have
preceded it. Surely you understand that now. Two or three plans
are in our mind, yet We are not sure yet which it is that our
Lord intends. After mass We shall communicate to you that
which He shall show Us to be according to His Will. We beg of
you to say mass also, immediately, for Our intention. Whatever
must be done must be done quickly. The matter of Cardinal
Dolgorovski you may leave until later. But we wish to hear the
result of your enquiries, especially in London, before mid-day.
Benedicat te Omnipotens Deus, Pater et Filius et Spiritus
Sanctus."
"`Amen!'" murmured the priest, reading it from the sheet.
(III)
The little chapel in the house below was scarcely more
dignified than the other rooms. Of ornaments, except those
absolutely essential to liturgy and devotion, there were none.
In the plaster of the walls were indented in slight relief the
fourteen stations of the Cross; a small stone image of the
Mother of God stood in a corner, with an iron-work candlestick
before it, and on the solid uncarved stone altar, raised on a
stone step, stood six more iron candlesticks and an iron
crucifix. A tabernacle, also of iron, shrouded by linen curtains,
stood beneath the cross; a small stone slab projecting from
the wall served as a credence. There was but one window, and
this looked into the court, so that the eyes of strangers might
not penetrate.
It seemed to the Syrian priest as he went about his business
--laying out the vestments in the little sacristy that opened
out at one side of the altar, preparing the cruets and stripping
the covering from the altar-cloth--that even that slight work
was wearying. There seemed a certain oppression in the air. As
to how far that was the result of his broken rest he did not
know, but he feared that it was one more of those scirocco days
that threatened. That yellowish tinge of dawn had not passed
with the sun-rising; even now, as he went noiselessly on his
bare feet between the predella and the prie-dieu where the
silent white figure was still motionless, he caught now and
again, above the roof across the tiny court, a glimpse of that
faint sand-tinged sky that was the promise of heat and
heaviness.
He finished at last, lighted the candles, genuflected, and
stood with bowed head waiting for the Holy Father to rise from
His knees. A servant's footstep sounded in the court, coming
across to hear mass, and simultaneously the Pope rose and went
towards the sacristy, where the red vestments of God who came
by fire were laid ready for the Sacrifice.
* * * * * *
Silvester's bearing at mass was singularly unostentatious. He
moved as swiftly as any young priest, His voice was quite even
and quite low, and his pace neither rapid nor pompous.
According to tradition, He occupied half-an-hour ab amictu ad
amictum; and even in the tiny empty chapel He observed to keep
His eyes always downcast. And yet this Syrian never served His
mass without a thrill of something resembling fear; it was not
only his knowledge of the awful dignity of this simple
celebrant; but, although he could not have expressed it so,
there was an aroma of an emotion about the vestmented figure
that affected him almost physically--an entire absence of self-
consciousness, and in its place the consciousness of some other
Presence, a perfection of manner even in the smallest details
that could only arise from absolute recollection. Even in Rome
in the old days it had been one of the sights of Rome to see
Father Franklin say mass; seminary students on the eve of
ordination were sent to that sight to learn the perfect manner
and method.
To-day all was as usual, but at the Communion the priest
looked up suddenly at the moment when the Host had been
consumed, with a half impression that either a sound or a
gesture had invited it; and, as he looked, his heart began to
beat thick and convulsive at the base of his throat. Yet to the
outward eyes there was nothing unusual. The figure stood there
with bowed head, the chin resting on the tips of the long
fingers, the body absolutely upright, and standing with that
curious light poise as if no weight rested upon the feet. But to
the inner sense something was apparent; the Syrian could not
in the least formulate it to himself; but afterwards he
reflected that he had stared expecting some visible or audible
manifestation to take place. It was an impression that might
be described under the terms of either light or sound; at any
instant that delicate vivid force, that to the eyes of the soul
burned beneath the red chasuble and the white alb, might have
suddenly welled outwards under the appearance of a gush of
radiant light rendering luminous not only the clear brown flesh
seen beneath the white hair, but the very texture of the coarse,
dead, stained stuffs that swathed the rest of the body. Or it
might have shown itself in the strain of a long chord on
strings or wind, as if the mystical union of the dedicated soul
with the ineffable Godhead and Humanity of Jesus Christ
generated such a sound as ceaselessly flows out with the river
of life from beneath the Throne of the Lamb. Or yet once more
it might have declared itself under the guise of a perfume--the
very essence of distilled sweetness--such a scent as that which,
streaming out through the gross tabernacle of a saint's body, is
to those who observe it as the breath of heavenly roses. . . .
The moments passed in that hush of purity and peace; sounds
came and went outside, the rattle of a cart far away, the sawing
of the first cicada in the coarse grass twenty yards away beyond
the wall; someone behind the priest was breathing short and
thick as under the pressure of an intolerable emotion, and yet
the figure stood there still, without a movement or sway to
break the carved motionlessness of the alb-folds or the perfect
poise of the white-shod feet. When He moved at last to uncover
the Precious Blood, to lay His hands on the altar and adore, it
was as if a statue had stirred into life; to the server it was
very nearly as a shock.
Again, when the chalice was empty, that first impression
reasserted itself; the human and the external died in the
embrace of the Divine and Invisible, and once more silence
lived and glowed. . . . And again as the spiritual energy sank
back again into its origin, Silvester stretched out the chalice.
With knees that shook and eyes wide in expectation, the
priest rose, adored, and went to the credence.
* * * * * *
It was customary after the Pope's mass that the priest
himself should offer the Sacrifice in his presence, but to-day
so soon as the vestments had been laid one by one on the rough
chest, Silvester turned to the priest.
"Presently," he said softly. "Go up, father, at once to the
roof, and tell the Cardinal to be ready. I shall come in five
minutes."
It was surely a scirocco-day, thought the priest, as he came
up on to the flat roof. Overhead, instead of the clear blue
proper to that hour of the morning, lay a pale yellow sky
darkening even to brown at the horizon. Thabor, before him,
hung distant and sombre seen through the impalpable
atmosphere of sand, and across the plain, as he glanced behind
him, beyond the white streak of Nain nothing was visible except
the pale outline of the tops of the hills against the sky. Even
at this morning hour, too, the air was hot and breathless,
broken only by the slow-stifling lift of the south-western
breeze that, blowing across countless miles of sand beyond far-
away Egypt, gathered up the heat of the huge waterless
continent and was pouring it, with scarcely a streak of sea to
soften its malignity, on this poor strip of land. Carmel, too,
as he turned again, was swathed about its base with mist, half
dry and half damp, and above showed its long bull-head running
out defiantly against the western sky. The very table as he
touched it was dry and hot to the hand, by mid-day the steel
would be intolerable.
He pressed the lever, and waited; pressed it again, and waited
again. There came the answering ring, and he tapped across the
eighty miles of air that his Eminence's presence was required
at once. A minute or two passed, and then, after another rap of
the bell, a line flicked out on the new white sheet.
"`I am here. Is it his Holiness?'"
He felt a hand upon his shoulder, and turned to see Silvester,
hooded and in white, behind his chair.
"Tell him yes. Ask him if there is further news."
The Pope went to the chair once more and sat down, and a
minute later the priest, with growing excitement, read out the
answer.
"`Enquiries are pouring in. Many expect your Holiness to
issue a challenge. My secretaries have been occupied since four
o'clock. The anxiety is indescribable. Some are denying that
they have a Pope. Something must be done at once.'"
"Is that all?" asked the Pope.
Again the priest read out the answer. "`Yes and no. The news
is true. It will be enforced immediately. Unless a step is taken
immediately there will be widespread and final apostasy.'"
"Very good," murmured the Pope, in his official voice. "Now
listen carefully, Eminence." He was silent for a moment, his
fingers joined beneath his chin as just now at mass. Then he
spoke.
"We are about to place ourselves unreservedly in the hands of
God. Human prudence must no longer restrain us. We command
you then, using all discretion that is possible, to communicate
these wishes of ours to the following persons under the
strictest secrecy, and to no others whatsoever. And for this
service you are to employ messengers, taken from the Order of
Christ Crucified, two for each message, which is not to be
committed to writing in any form. The members of the Sacred
College, numbering twelve; the metropolitans and Patriarchs
through the entire world, numbering twenty-two; the Generals of
the Religious Orders: the Society of Jesus, the Friars, the
Monks Ordinary, and the Monks Contemplative--four. These
persons, thirty-eight in number, with the chaplain of your
Eminence, who shall act as notary, and my own who shall assist
him, and Ourself--forty-one all told--these persons are to
present themselves here at our palace of Nazareth not later
than the Eve of Pentecost. We feel Ourselves unwilling to decide
the steps necessary to be taken with reference to the new
decree, except we first hear the counsel of our advisers, and
give them an opportunity of communicating freely one with
another. These words, as we have spoken them, are to be
forwarded to all those persons whom we have named; and your
Eminence will further inform them that our deliberations will
not occupy more than four days.
"As regards the questions of provisioning the council and all
matters of that kind, your Eminence will despatch to-day the
chaplain of whom we have spoken, who with my own chaplain will
at once set about preparations, and your Eminence will yourself
follow, appointing Father Marabout to act in your absence, not
later than four days hence.
"Finally, to all who have asked explicit directions in the
face of this new decree, communicate this one sentence, and no
more.
"Lose not your confidence which hath a great reward. For yet
a little while, and He that is to come will come and will not
delay.--Silvester the Bishop, Servant of the Servants of God."
OLIVER Brand stepped out from the Conference Hall in
Westminster on the Friday evening, so soon as the business was
over and the Plenipotentiaries had risen from the table, more
concerned as to the effect of the news upon his wife than upon
the world.
He traced the beginning of the change to the day five months
ago when the President of the World had first declared the
development of his policy, and while Oliver himself had yielded
to that development, and from defending it in public had
gradually convinced himself of its necessity, Mabel, for the
first time in her life, had shown herself absolutely obstinate.
The woman to his mind seemed to him to have fallen into
some kind of insanity. Felsenburgh's declaration had been made
a week or two after his Acclamation at Westminster, and Mabel
had received the news of it at first with absolute incredulity.
Then, when there was no longer any doubt that he had
declared the extermination of the Supernaturalists to be a
possible necessity, there had been a terrible scene between
husband and wife. She had said that she had been deceived; that
the world's hope was a monstrous mockery; that the reign of
universal peace was as far away as ever; that Felsenburgh had
betrayed his trust and broken his word. There had been an
appalling scene. He did not even now like to recall it to his
imagination. She had quieted after a while, but his arguments,
delivered with infinite patience, seemed to produce very little
effect. She settled down into silence, hardly answering him. One
thing only seemed to touch her, and that was when he spoke of
the President himself. It was becoming plain to him that she
was but a woman after all at the mercy of a strong personality
but utterly beyond the reach of logic. He was very much
disappointed. Yet he trusted to time to cure her.
The Government of England had taken swift and skilful steps
to reassure those who, like Mabel, recoiled from the inevitable
logic of the new policy. An army of speakers traversed the
country, defending and explaining; the press was engineered with
extraordinary adroitness, and it was possible to say that there
was not a person among the millions of England who had not
easy access to the Government's defence.
Briefly, shorn of rhetoric, their arguments were as follows,
and there was no doubt that, on the whole, they had the effect
of quieting the amazed revolt of the more sentimental minds.
Peace, it was pointed out, had for the first time in the
world's history become an universal fact. There was no longer
one State, however small, whose interests were not identical
with those of one of the three divisions of the world of which
it was a dependency, and that first stage had been accomplished
nearly half-a-century ago. But the second stage--the reunion of
these three divisions under a common head--an infinitely
greater achievement than the former, since the conflicting
interests were incalculably more vast--this had been
consummated by a single Person, Who, it appeared, had emerged
from humanity at the very instant when such a Character was
demanded. It was surely not much to ask that those on whom
these benefits had come should assent to the will and
judgement of Him through whom they had come. This, then, was
an appeal to faith.
The second main argument was addressed to reason.
Persecution, as all enlightened persons confessed, was the
method of a majority of savages who desired to force a set of
opinions upon a minority who did not spontaneously share
them. Now the peculiar malevolence of persecution in the past
lay, not in the employment of force, but in the abuse of it.
That any one kingdom should dictate religious opinions to a
minority of its members was an intolerable tyranny, for no one
State possessed the right to lay down universal laws, the
contrary to which might be held by its neighbour. This,
however, disguised, was nothing else than the Individualism of
Nations, a heresy even more disastrous to the commonwealth of
the world than the Individualism of the Individual. But with the
arrival of the universal community of interests the whole
situation was changed. The single personality of the human race
had succeeded to the incoherence of divided units, and with that
consummation--which might be compared to a coming of age, an
entirely new set of rights had come into being. The human race
was now a single entity with a supreme responsibility towards
itself; there were no longer any private rights at all, such as
had certainly existed in the period previous to this. Man now
possessed dominion over every cell which composed His Mystical
Body, and where any such cell asserted itself to the detriment
of the Body, the rights of the whole were unqualified.
And there was no religion but one that claimed the equal
rights of universal jurisdiction--and that the Catholic. The
sects of the East, while each retained characteristics of its
own, had yet found in the New Man the incarnation of their
ideals, and had therefore given in their allegiance to the
authority of the whole Body of whom He was Head. But the very
essence of the Catholic Religion was treason to the very idea of
man. Christians directed their homage to a supposed
supernatural Being who was not only--so they claimed--outside
of the world but positively transcended it. Christians, then--
leaving aside the mad fable of the Incarnation, which might
very well be suffered to die of its own folly--deliberately
severed themselves from that Body of which by human
generation they had been made members. They were as mortified
limbs yielding themselves to the domination of an outside
force other than that which was their only life, and by that
very act imperilled the entire Body. This madness, then, was
the one crime which still deserved the name. Murder, theft,
rape, even anarchy itself, were as trifling faults compared to
this monstrous sin, for while these injured indeed the Body
they did not strike at its heart--individuals suffered, and
therefore those minor criminals deserved restraint; but the
very Life was not struck at. But in Christianity there was a
poison actually deadly. Every cell that became infected with it
was infected in that very fibre that bound it to the spring of
life. This, and this alone, was the supreme crime of High
Treason against man--and nothing but complete removal from
the world could be an adequate remedy.
These, then, were the main arguments addressed to that
section of the world which still recoiled from the deliberate
utterance of Felsenburgh, and their success had been
remarkable. Of course, the logic, in itself indisputable, had
been dressed in a variety of costumes gilded with rhetoric,
flushed with passion, and it had done its work in such a manner
that as summer drew on Felsenburgh had announced privately
that he proposed to introduce a bill which should carry out to
its logical conclusion the policy of which he had spoken.
Now this, too, had been accomplished.
(II)
Oliver let himself into his house, and went straight upstairs
to Mabel's room. It would not do to let her hear the news from
any but his own lips. She was not there, and on enquiry he heard
that she had gone out an hour before.
He was disconcerted at this. The decree had been signed half-
an-hour earlier, and in answer to an enquiry from Lord
Pemberton it had been stated that there was no longer any
reason for secrecy, and that the decision might be
communicated to the press. Oliver had hurried away immediately
in order to make sure that Mabel should hear the news from
him, and now she was out, and at any moment the placards might
tell her of what had been done.
He felt extremely uneasy, but for another hour or so was
ashamed to act. Then he went to the tube and asked another
question or two, but the servant had no idea of Mabel's
movements; it might be she had gone to the church; sometimes
she did at this hour. He sent the woman off to see, and himself
sat down again in the window-seat of his wife's room, staring
out disconsolately at the wide array of roofs in the golden
sunset light, that seemed to his eyes to be strangely beautiful
this evening. The sky was not that pure gold which it had been
every night during this last week; there was a touch of rose in
it, and this extended across the entire vault so far as he could
see from west to east. He reflected on what he had lately read
in an old book to the effect that the abolition of smoke had
certainly changed evening colours for the worse. . . . There had
been a couple of severe earthquakes, too, in America--he
wondered whether there was any connection. . . . Then his
thoughts flew back to Mabel. . . .
It was about ten minutes before he heard her footstep on the
stairs, and as he stood up she came in.
There was something in her face that told him that she knew
everything, and his heart sickened at her pale rigidity. There
was no fury there--nothing but white, hopeless despair, and an
immense determination. Her lips showed a straight line, and
her eyes, beneath her white summer hat, seemed contracted to
pinpricks. She stood there, closing the door mechanically
behind her, and made no further movement towards him.
"Is it true?" she said.
Oliver drew one steady breath, and sat down again.
"Is what true, my dear?"
"Is it true," she said again, "that all are to be questioned as
to whether they believe in God, and to be killed if they confess
it?"
Oliver licked his dry lips.
"You put it very harshly," he said. "The question is, whether
the world has a right----"
She made a sharp movement with her head.
"It is true then. And you signed it?"
"My dear, I beg you not to make a scene. I am tired out. And
I will not answer that until you have heard what I have to say."
"Say it, then."
"Sit down, then."
She shook her head.
"Very well, then. . . . Well, this is the point. The world is
one now, not many. Individualism is dead. It died when
Felsenburgh became President of the World. You surely see that
absolutely new conditions prevail now--there has never been
anything like it before. You know all this as well as I do."
Again came that jerk of impatience.
"You will please to hear me out," he said wearily. "Well, now
that this has happened, there is a new morality; it is exactly
like a child coming to the age of reason. We are obliged,
therefore, to see that this continues--that there is no going
back--no mortification--that all the limbs are in good health.
`If thy hand offend thee, cut it off,' said Jesus Christ. Well,
that is what we say. . . . Now, for anyone to say that they
believe in God--I doubt very much whether there is anyone who
really does believe, or understand what it means--but for
anyone even to say so is the very worst crime conceivable: it
is high-treason. But there is going to be no violence; it will
all be quite quiet and merciful. Why, you have always approved
of Euthanasia, as we all do. Well, it is that that will be used;
and----"
Once more she made a little movement with her head. The
rest of her was like an image.
"Is this any use?" she asked.
Oliver stood up. He could not bear the hardness of her voice.
"Mabel, my darling----"
For an instant her lips shook, then again she looked at him
with eyes of ice.
"I don't want that," she said. "It is of no use. . . . Then you
did sign it?"
Oliver had a sense of miserable desperation as he looked
back at her. He would infinitely have preferred that she had
stormed and wept.
"Mabel----" he cried again.
"Then you did sign it?" . . .
"I did sign it," he said at last.
She turned and went towards the door. He sprang after her.
"Mabel, where are you going?"
Then, for the first time in her life, she lied to her husband
frankly and fully.
"I am going to rest a little," she said. "I shall see you
presently at supper."
He still hesitated, but she met his eyes, pale indeed, but so
honest that he fell back.
"Very well, my dear. . . . Mabel, try to understand."
* * * * * *
He came down to supper half-an-hour later, primed with
logic, and even kindled with emotion. The argument seemed to
him now so utterly convincing; granted the premises that they
both accepted and lived by, the conclusion was simply
inevitable.
He waited a minute or two, and at last went to the tube that
communicated with the servants' quarters.
"Where is Mrs. Brand?" he asked.
There was an instant's silence, and then the answer came:--
"She left the house half-an-hour ago, sir. I thought you
knew."
(III)
That same evening Mr. Francis was very busy in his office
over the details connected with the festival of Sustenance that
was to be celebrated on the first of July. It was the first time
that the particular ceremony had taken place, and he was
anxious that it should be as successful as its predecessors.
There were a few differences between this and the others, and it
was necessary that the ceremoniarii should be fully instructed.
So, with his model before him--a miniature replica of the
interior of the Abbey, with tiny dummy figures on blocks that
could be shifted this way and that, he was engaged in adding in a
minute ecclesiastical hand rubrical notes to his copy of the
Order of Proceedings.
When the porter therefore rang up a little after twenty-one
o'clock, that a lady wished to see him, he answered rather
brusquely down the tube that it was impossible. But the bell
rang again, and to his impatient question, the reply came up
that it was Mrs. Brand below, and that she did not ask for more
than ten minutes' conversation. This was quite another matter.
Oliver Brand was an important personage, and his wife therefore
had significance, and Mr. Francis apologised, gave directions
that she was to come to his ante-room, and rose, sighing, from
his dummy Abbey and officials.
* * * * * *
She seemed very quiet this evening, he thought, as he shook
hands with her a minute later; she wore her veil down, so that
he could not see her face very well, but her voice seemed to
lack its usual vivacity.
"I am so sorry to interrupt you, Mr. Francis," she said. "I
only want to ask you one or two questions."
He smiled at her encouragingly.
"Mr. Brand no doubt----"
"No," she said, "Mr. Brand has not sent me. It is entirely my
own affair. You will see my reasons presently. I will begin at
once. I know I must not keep you."
It all seemed rather odd, he thought, but no doubt he would
understand soon.
"First," she said, "I think you used to know Father Franklin.
He became a Cardinal, didn't he?"
Mr. Francis assented, smiling.
"Do you know if he is alive?"
"No," he said. "He is dead. He was in Rome, you know, at the
time of its destruction."
"Ah! You are sure?"
"Quite sure. Only one Cardinal escaped--Steinmann. He was
hanged in Berlin; and the Patriarch of Jerusalem died a week or
two later."
"Ah! very well. Well, now, here is a very odd question. I ask
for a particular reason, which I cannot explain, but you will
soon understand. . . . It is this--Why do Catholics believe in
God?"
He was so much taken aback that for a moment he sat
staring.
"Yes," she said tranquilly, "it is a very odd question.
But----" she hesitated. "Well, I will tell you," she said. "The
fact is, that I have a friend who is--is in danger from this new
law. I want to be able to argue with her; and I must know her
side. You are the only priest--I mean who has been a priest--
whom I ever knew, except Father Franklin. So I thought you
would not mind telling me."
Her voice was entirely natural; there was not a tremor or a
falter in it. Mr. Francis smiled genially, rubbing his hands
softly together.
"Ah!" he said. "Yes, I see. . . . Well, that is a very large
question. Would not to-morrow, perhaps----?"
"I only want just the shortest answer," she said. "It is
really important for me to know at once. You see, this new law
comes into force----"
He nodded.
"Well--very briefly, I should say this: Catholics say that God
can be perceived by reason; that from the arrangements of the
world they can deduce that there must have been an Arranger--a
Mind, you understand. Then they say that they deduce other
things about God--that He is Love, for example, because of
happiness----"
"And the pain?" she interrupted.
He smiled again.
"Yes. That is the point--that is the weak point."
"But what do they say about that?"
"Well, briefly, they say that pain is the result of sin----"
"And sin? You see, I know nothing at all, Mr. Francis."
"Well, sin is the rebellion of man's will against God's."
"What do they mean by that?"
"Well, you see, they say that God wanted to be loved by His
creatures, so He made them free; otherwise they could not
really love. But if they were free, it means that they could if
they liked refuse to love and obey God; and that is what is
called Sin. You see what nonsense----"
She jerked her head a little.
"Yes, yes," she said. "But I really want to get at what they
think. . . . Well, then, that is all?"
Mr. Francis pursed his lips.
"Scarcely," he said; "that is hardly more than what they call
Natural Religion. Catholics believe much more than that."
"Well?"
"My dear Mrs. Brand, it is impossible to put it in a few
words. But, in brief, they believe that God became man--that
Jesus was God, and that He did this in order to save them from
sin by dying----"
"By bearing pain, you mean?"
"Yes; by dying. Well, what they call the Incarnation is really
the point. Everything else flows from that. And, once a man
believes that, I must confess that all the rest follows--even
down to scapulars and holy water."
"Mr. Francis, I don't understand a word you're saying."
He smiled indulgently.
"Of course not," he said; "it is all incredible nonsense. But,
you know, I did really believe it all once."
"But it's unreasonable," she said.
He made a little demurring sound.
"Yes," he said, "in one sense, of course it is--utterly
unreasonable. But in another sense----"
She leaned forward suddenly, and he could catch the glint of
her eyes beneath her white veil.
"Ah!" she said, almost breathlessly. "That is what I want to
hear. Now, tell me how they justify it."
He paused an instant, considering.
"Well," he said slowly, "as far as I remember, they say that
there are other faculties besides those of reason. They say, for
example, that the heart sometimes finds out things that the
reason cannot--intuitions, you see. For instance, they say that
all things such as self-sacrifice and chivalry and even art--all
come from the heart, that Reason comes with them--in rules of
technique, for instance--but that it cannot prove them; they
are quite apart from that."
"I think I see."
"Well, they say that Religion is like that--in other words,
they practically confess that it is merely a matter of
emotion." He paused again, trying to be fair. "Well, perhaps
they would not say that--although it is true. But briefly----"
"Well?"
"Well, they say there is a thing called Faith--a kind of deep
conviction unlike anything else--supernatural--which God is
supposed to give to people who desire it--to people who pray
for it, and lead good lives, and so on----"
"And this Faith?"
"Well, this Faith, acting upon what they call Evidences--this
Faith makes them absolutely certain that there is a God, that
He was made man and so on, with the Church and all the rest of
it. They say too that this is further proved by the effect that
their religion has had in the world, and by the way it explains
man's nature to himself. You see, it is just a case of self-
suggestion."
He heard her sigh, and stopped.
"Is that any clearer, Mrs. Brand?"
"Thank you very much," she said, "it certainly is clearer.
. . . And it is true that Christians have died for this Faith,
whatever it is?"
"Oh! yes. Thousands and thousands. just as Mohammedans have
for theirs."
"The Mohammedans believe in God, too, don't they?"
"Well, they did, and I suppose that a few do now. But very
few: the rest have become esoteric, as they say."
"And--and which would you say were the most highly evolved
people--East or West?"
"Oh! West undoubtedly. The East thinks a good deal, but it
doesn't act much. And that always leads to confusion--even to
stagnation of thought."
"And Christianity certainly has been the Religion of the West
up to a hundred years ago?"
"Oh! yes."
She was silent then, and Mr. Francis had time again to
reflect how very odd all this was. She certainly must be very
much attached to this Christian friend of hers.
Then she stood up, and he rose with her.
"Thank you so much, Mr. Francis. . . . Then that is the kind
of outline?"
"Well, yes; so far as one can put it in a few words."
"Thank you. . . . I mustn't keep you."
He went with her towards the door. But within a yard of it
she stopped.
"And you, Mr. Francis. You were brought up in all this. Does
it ever come back to you?"
He smiled.
"Never," he said, "except as a dream."
"How do you account for that, then? If it is all self-
suggestion, you have had thirty years of it."
She paused; and for a moment he hesitated what to answer.
"How would your old fellow-Catholics account for it?"
"They would say that I had forfeited light--that Faith was
withdrawn."
"And you?"
Again he paused.
"I should say that I had made a stronger self-suggestion the
other way."
"I see. . . . Good-night, Mr. Francis."
* * * * * *
She would not let him come down the lift with her, so when
he had seen the smooth box drop noiselessly below the level,
he went back again to his model of the Abbey and the little
dummy figures. But, before he began to move these about again,
he sat for a moment or two with pursed lips, staring.
A WEEK later Mabel awoke about dawn; and for a moment or two
forgot where she was. She even spoke Oliver's name aloud,
staring round the unfamiliar room, wondering what she did here.
Then she remembered, and was silent. . . .
It was the eighth day she had spent in this Home; her
probation was finished: to-day she was at liberty to do that for
which she had come. On the Saturday of the previous week she
had gone through her private examination before the
magistrate, stating under the usual conditions of secrecy her
name, age and home, as well as her reasons for making the
application for Euthanasia; and all had passed off well. She had
selected Manchester as being sufficiently remote and
sufficiently large to secure her freedom from Oliver's
molestation; and her secret had been admirably kept. There was
not a hint that her husband knew anything of her intentions;
for, after all, in these cases the police were bound to assist
the fugitive. Individualism was at least so far recognised as to
secure to those weary of life the right of relinquishing it. She
scarcely knew why she had selected this method, except that any
other seemed impossible. The knife required skill and
resolution; fire-arms were unthinkable, and poison, under the
new stringent regulations, was hard to obtain. Besides, she
seriously wished to test her own intentions, and to be quite
sure that there was no other way than this. . . .
Well, she was as certain as ever. The thought had first come
to her in the mad misery of the outbreak of violence on the
last day of the old year. Then it had gone again, soothed away
by the arguments that man was still liable to relapse.
Then once more it had recurred, a cold and convincing
phantom, in the plain daylight revealed by Felsenburgh's
Declaration. It had taken up its abode with her then, yet she
controlled it, hoping against hope that the Declaration would
not be carried into action, occasionally revolting against its
horror. Yet it had never been far away; and finally when the
policy sprouted into deliberate law, she had yielded herself
resolutely to its suggestion. That was eight days ago; and she
had not had one moment of faltering since that.
Yet she had ceased to condemn. The logic had silenced her.
All that she knew was that she could not bear it; that she had
misconceived the New Faith; that for her, whatever it was for
others, there was no hope. . . . She had not even a child of her
own.
* * * * * *
Those eight days, required by law, had passed very peacefully.
She had taken with her enough money to enter one of the
private homes furnished with sufficient comfort to save from
distractions those who had been accustomed to gentle living:
the nurses had been pleasant and sympathetic; she had nothing
to complain of.
She had suffered, of course, to some degree from reactions.
The second night after her arrival had been terrible, when, as
she lay in bed in the hot darkness, her whole sentient life had
protested and struggled against the fate her will ordained. It
had demanded the familiar things--the promise of food and
breath and human intercourse; it had writhed in horror against
the blind dark towards which it moved so inevitably; and, in the
agony had been pacified only by the half-hinted promise of
some deeper voice suggesting that death was not the end. With
morning light sanity had come back; the will had reassumed the
mastery, and, with it, had withdrawn explicitly the implied
hope of continued existence. She had suffered again for an hour
or two from a more concrete fear; the memory came back to her
of those shocking revelations that ten years ago had convulsed
England and brought about the establishment of these Homes
under Government supervision--those evidences that for years in
the great vivisection-laboratories human subjects had been
practised upon--persons who with the same intentions as
herself had cut themselves off from the world in private
euthanasia-houses, to whom had been supplied a gas that
suspended instead of destroying animation. . . . But this, too,
had passed with the return of light. Such things were
impossible now under the new system--at least, in England. She
had refrained from making an end upon the Continent for this
very reason. There, where sentiment was weaker, and logic more
imperious, materialism was more consistent. Since men were
but animals--the conclusion was inevitable.
There had been but one physical drawback, the intolerable
heat of the days and nights. It seemed, scientists said, that an
entirely unexpected heat-wave had been generated; there were a
dozen theories, most of which were mutually exclusive one of
another. It was humiliating, she thought, that men who
professed to have taken the earth under their charge should be
so completely baffled. The conditions of the weather had of
course been accompanied by disasters; there had been
earthquakes of astonishing violence, a ripple had wrecked not
less than twenty-five towns in America; an island or two had
disappeared, and that bewildering Vesuvius seemed to be working
up for a dénouement. But no one knew really the explanation.
One man had been wild enough to say that some cataclysm had
taken place in the centre of the earth. . . . So she had heard
from her nurse; but she was not greatly interested. It was only
tiresome that she could not walk much in the garden, and had to
be content with sitting in her own cool shaded room on the
second floor.
There was only one other matter of which she had asked,
namely, the effect of the new decree; but the nurse did not
seem to know much about that. It